or use Advanced Search
if you are searching for a compound word, note that it might appear in any of three ways, reflecting varied editorial practice: spaced ('house keeper'), solid ('housekeeper'), or hyphenated ('house-keeper')

Search results

Search phrase: then

Plays

 4256 result(s). alternate result(s)
PlayKey LineModern TextOriginal Text
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.i.9would stir it up where it wanted, rather than lack itwould stirre it vp where it wanted rather then lack it
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.i.51affect a sorrow than to have't.affect a sorrow, then to haue------
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.i.64Rather in power than use, and keep thy friendRather in power then vse: and keepe thy friend
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.i.80Than those I shed for him. What was he like?Then those I shed for him. What was he like?
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.i.157your porridge than in your cheek; and your virginity,your Porredge, then in your cheeke: and your virginity,
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.ii.20Frank nature, rather curious than in haste,Franke Nature rather curious then in hast
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.ii.49Lies richer in your thoughts than on his tomb;Lies richer in your thoughts, then on his tombe:
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.5past endeavours, for then we wound our modesty, andpast endeuours, for then we wound our Modestie, and
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.38Thy marriage, sooner than thy wickedness.Thy marriage sooner then thy wickednesse.
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.74And gave this sentence then:And gaue this sentence then,
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.100owing her than is paid, and more shall be paid her thanowing her then is paid, and more shall be paid her then
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.102Madam, I was very late more near her than IMadam, I was verie late more neere her then I
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.130Such were our faults, or then we thought them none.Such were our faults, or then we thought them none,
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.159I care no more for than I do for heaven,I care no more for, then I doe for heauen,
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.171But tell me then, 'tis so; for, look, thy cheeksBut tell me then 'tis so, for looke, thy cheekes
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.186.2Then, I confess,Then I confesse
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.208Was both herself and love – O then, give pityWas both her selfe and loue, O then giue pittie
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.222More than they were in note. Amongst the restMore then they were in note: Amongst the rest,
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.230.1Haply been absent then.Happily beene absent then.
All's Well That Ends WellAW I.iii.238More than my father's skill, which was the greatestMore then my Fathers skill, which was the great'st
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.i.63Then here's a man stands that has brought his pardon.Then heres a man stands that has brought his pardon,
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.i.85Than I dare blame my weakness. Will you see her,Then I dare blame my weakenesse: will you see her?
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.i.109Safer than mine own two, more dear; I have so,Safer then mine owne two: more deare I haue so,
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.i.125My duty then shall pay me for my pains.My dutie then shall pay me for my paines:
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.i.193Then shalt thou give me with thy kingly handThen shalt thou giue me with thy kingly hand
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.35use to be made than alone the recovery of the King, asvse to be made, then alone the recou'ry of the king, as
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.59My mouth no more were broken than these boys',My mouth no more were broken then these boyes,
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.77I had rather be in this choice than throw ames-aceI had rather be in this choise, then throw / Ames-ace
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.104Why, then, young Bertram, take her, she's thy wife.Why then young Bertram take her shee's thy wife.
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.136Than our foregoers. The mere word's a slave,Then our fore-goers: the meere words, a slaue
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.238pity of his age than I would have of – I'll beat him an ifpittie of his age then I would haue of------ Ile beate him, and if
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.260honourable personages than the commission of yourhonourable personages, then the Commission of your
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.iii.263Good, very good, it is so then. Good, veryGood, very good, it is so then: good, very
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.5Then my dial goes not true: I took this lark for aThen my Diall goes not true, I tooke this Larke for a
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.9I have then sinned against his experience andI haue then sinn'd against his experience, and
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.38it you'll run again rather than suffer question for yourit you'le runne againe, rather then suffer question for your
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.47you than you have or will to deserve at my hand, but weyou, then you haue or will to deserue at my hand, but we
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.65And rather muse than ask why I entreat you;And rather muse then aske why I intreate you,
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.66For my respects are better than they seem,For my respects are better then they seeme,
All's Well That Ends WellAW II.v.68Greater than shows itself at the first viewGreater then shewes it selfe at the first view,
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.ii.58that I am father to, then call me husband; but in such athat I am father too, then call me husband: but in such a
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.ii.59then ’ I write a ‘ never.’(then) I write a Neuer.
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.ii.102Then hast thou all again. Poor lord, is't IThen hast thou all againe: poore Lord, is't I
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.iii.6.2Then go thou forth,Then go thou forth,
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vi.17None better than to let him fetch off hisNone better then to let him fetch off his
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vi.79No more than a fish loves water. Is not this aNo more then a fish loues water. Is not this a
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vi.83than to do't.then to doo't.
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vii.10Is so from word to word, and then you cannot,Is so from word to word: and then you cannot
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vii.30You see it lawful then. It is no moreYou see it lawfull then, it is no more,
All's Well That Ends WellAW III.vii.43.2Why then tonightWhy then to night
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.i.22two hours in a sleep, and then to return and swear thetwo houres in a sleepe, and then to returne & swear the
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.i.94Till then I'll keep him dark and safely locked.Till then Ile keepe him darke and safely lockt.
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.ii.11.1She then was honest.She then was honest.
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.ii.24But take the highest to witness. Then, pray you, tell me:But take the high'st to witnesse: then pray you tell me,
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.ii.36Who then recovers. Say thou art mine, and everWho then recouers. Say thou art mine, and euer
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.ii.64Adieu till then; then, fail not. You have wonAdieu till then, then faile not: you haue wonne
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.iii.26trumpeters of our unlawful intents? We shall not thenTrumpeters of our vnlawfull intents? We shall not then
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.iii.40What will Count Rossillion do then? WillWhat will Count Rossilliondo then? Will
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.iii.79They shall be no more than needful there,They shall bee no more then needfull there,
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.iii.80if they were more than they can commend.if they were more then they can commend.
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.iii.246not keeping of oaths; in breaking 'em he is stronger thannot keeping of oaths, in breaking em he is stronger then
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.v.6King than by that red-tailed humble-bee I speak of.King, then by that red-tail'd humble Bee I speak of.
All's Well That Ends WellAW IV.v.38fisnomy is more hotter in France than there.fisnomie is more hotter in France then there.
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.i.24.1Than is his use.Then is his vse.
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.ii.40You beg more than ‘ word ’ then. Cox my passion!You begge more then word then. Cox my passion,
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.24And deeper than oblivion we do buryAnd deeper then obliuion, we do burie
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.30Then shall we have a match. I have letters sent meThen shall we haue a match. I haue letters sent me,
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.71Which better than the first, O dear heaven, bless!Which better then the first, O deere heauen blesse,
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.104Than I have in this ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helen's,Then I haue in this Ring. 'Twas mine, 'twas Helens,
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.105Whoever gave it you; then if you knowWho euer gaue it you: then if you know
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.120More than to see this ring. Take him away.More then to see this Ring. Take him away,
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.181Than for to think that I would sink it here.Then for to thinke that I would sinke it heere.
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.184.1Than in my thought it lies!Then in my thought it lies.
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.229The story then goes false you threw it himThe story then goes false, you threw it him
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.255Faith, I know more than I'll speak.Faith I know more then Ile speake.
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.258them as I said; but more than that, he loved her, forthem as I said, but more then that he loued her, for
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.272.1Where did you find it then?Where did you finde it then?
All's Well That Ends WellAW V.iii.336Ours be your patience then and yours our parts;Ours be your patience then, and yours our parts,
Antony and CleopatraAC I.i.17Then must thou needs find out new heaven, new earth.Then must thou needes finde out new Heauen, new Earth.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.17Pray then, foresee me one.Pray then, foresee me one.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.18You shall be yet far fairer than you are.You shall be yet farre fairer then you are.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.24You shall be more beloving than beloved.You shall be more belouing, then beloued.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.33O, excellent! I love long life better than figs.Oh excellent, I loue long life better then Figs.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.35Than that which is to approach.then that which is to approach.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.36Then belike my children shall have noThen belike my Children shall haue no
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.59Am I not an inch of fortune better than she?Am I not an inch of Fortune better then she?
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.61better than I, where would you choose it?better then I: where would you choose it.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.110Have power to utter. O, then we bring forth weedsHaue power to vtter. Oh then we bring forth weeds,
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.130Ten thousand harms, more than the ills I know,Ten thousand harmes, more then the illes I know
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.134Why, then we kill all our women. We seeWhy then we kill all our Women. We see
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.150storms and tempests than almanacs can report. Thisstormes and Tempests then Almanackes can report. This
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.154O, sir, you had then left unseen a wonderfulOh sir, you had then left vnseene a wonderfull
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.167women but Fulvia, then had you indeed a cut, and theWomen but Fuluia, then had you indeede a cut, and the
Antony and CleopatraAC I.ii.191Higher than both in blood and life, stands upHigher then both in Blood and Life, stands vp
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iii.34Then was the time for words. No going then!Then was the time for words: No going then,
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iii.77Then bid adieu to me, and say the tearsThen bid adiew to me, and say the teares
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.6Than Cleopatra, nor the queen of PtolemyThen Cleopatra: nor the Queene of Ptolomy
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.7More womanly than he; hardly gave audience, orMore Womanly then he. Hardly gaue audience / Or
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.14Rather than purchased, what he cannot changeRather then purchaste: what he cannot change,
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.15Than what he chooses.Then what he chooses.
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.55.1Than could his war resisted.Then could his Warre resisted
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.61Than savages could suffer. Thou didst drinkThen Sauages could suffer. Thou did'st drinke
Antony and CleopatraAC I.iv.63Which beasts would cough at. Thy palate then did deignWhich Beasts would cough at. Thy pallat thẽ did daine
Antony and CleopatraAC I.v.75To say as I said then. But come, away,To say, as I saide then. But come, away,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.10Serves for the matter that is then born in't.serues for the matter that is then borne in't.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.22Murder in healing wounds. Then, noble partners,Murther in healing wounds. Then Noble Partners,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.32Nay then.Nay then.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.41No more than my residing here at RomeNo more then my reciding heere at Rome
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.79He fell upon me, ere admitted, then.he fell vpon me, ere admitted, then:
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.94And then when poisoned hours had bound me upAnd then when poysoned houres had bound me vp
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.115Go to, then; your considerate stone.Go too then: your Considerate stone.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.134No worse a husband than the best of men;No worse a husband then the best of men:
Antony and CleopatraAC II.ii.139Would then be nothing. Truths would be tales,Would then be nothing. Truth's would be tales,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.v.22Then put my tires and mantles on him, whilstThen put my Tires and Mantles on him, whilst
Antony and CleopatraAC II.v.48Caesar and he are greater friends than ever.Caesar, and he, are greater Friends then euer.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.v.73.2Nay, then I'll run.Nay then Ile runne:
Antony and CleopatraAC II.v.83A meaner than myself; since I myselfA meaner then my selfe: since I my selfe
Antony and CleopatraAC II.v.90I cannot hate thee worser than I doI cannot hate thee worser then I do,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.36Rid all the sea of pirates; then, to sendRid all the Sea of Pirats. Then, to send
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.39.3Know, then,Know then
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.51That called me timelier than my purpose hither;That cal'd me timelier then my purpose hither:
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.67Then so much have I heard.Then so much haue I heard,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.113Then is Caesar and he for ever knit together.Then is Casar and he, for euer knit together.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.117the marriage than the love of the parties.the Marriage, then the loue of the parties.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vi.124Antony. He will to his Egyptian dish again. Then shallAnthony: he will to his Egyptian dish againe: then shall
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vii.33in till then.in till then.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vii.90The third part then is drunk. Would it were all,The third part, then he is drunk: would it were all,
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vii.101.1Than drink so much in one.then drinke so much in one.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vii.108The while I'll place you; then the boy shall sing.The while, Ile place you, then the Boy shall sing.
Antony and CleopatraAC II.vii.121Is weaker than the wine, and mine own tongueIs weaker then the Wine, and mine owne tongue
Antony and CleopatraAC III.i.14Better to leave undone than by our deedBetter to leaue vndone, then by our deed
Antony and CleopatraAC III.i.17More in their officer than person. Sossius,More in their officer, then person. Sossius
Antony and CleopatraAC III.i.21Who does i'th' wars more than his captain canWho does i'th'Warres more then his Captaine can,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.i.24Than gain which darkens him.Then gaine, which darkens him.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.iii.20She shows a body rather than a life,She shewes a body, rather then a life,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.iii.21.1A statue than a breather.A Statue, then a Breather.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.iv.8He vented them, most narrow measure lent me;He vented then most narrow measure: lent me,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.iv.24Than yours so branchless. But, as you requested,Then your so branchlesse. But as you requested,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.v.12Then, world, thou hast a pair of chaps, no more;Then would thou hadst a paire of chaps no more,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vi.8Since then hath made between them. Unto herSince then hath made betweene them. Vnto her,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vi.26His part o'th' isle. Then does he say he lent meHis part o'th'Isle. Then does he say, he lent me
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vi.35I grant him part; but then in his Armenia,I grant him part: but then in his Armenia,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vi.38Nor must not then be yielded to in this.Nor must not then be yeelded to in this.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vii.12What should not then be spared. He is alreadyWhat should not then be spar'd. He is already
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vii.25.1Than by the negligent.Then by the negligent.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.vii.53.1We then can do't at land.We then can doo't at Land.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.x.29Ay, are you thereabouts? Why then, good night indeed.I, are you thereabouts? Why then goodnight indeede.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xi.45Well then, sustain me. O!Well then, sustaine me: Oh.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.7The itch of his affection should not thenThe itch of his Affection should not then
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.11Than was his loss, to course your flying flagsThen was his losse, to course your flying Flagges,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.15The Queen shall then have courtesy, so sheThe Queene shall then haue courtesie, / So she
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.53Thus then, thou most renowned: Caesar entreatsThus then thou most renown'd, Casar intreats,
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.55.1Further than he is Caesar.Further then he is Casars.
Antony and CleopatraAC III.xiii.95.1Than with an old one dying.Then with an old one dying.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.ii.44Than death and honour. Let's to supper, come,Then death, and Honor. Let's to Supper, come,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.iv.15More tight at this than thou. Dispatch. O, love,More tight at this, then thou: Dispatch. O Loue,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.iv.38Then Antony – but now. Well, on.Then Anthony; but now. Well on.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.ix.19Nobler than my revolt is infamous,Nobler then my reuolt is Infamous,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.ix.33Come on then; he may recover yet.Come on then, he may recouer yet.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiii.2Than Telamon for his shield; the boar of ThessalyThen Telamon for his Shield, the Boare of Thessaly
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiii.6.1Than greatness going off.Then greatnesse going off.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.31Then in the midst a tearing groan did breakThen in the midd'st a tearing grone did breake
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.34.2Dead, then?Dead then?
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.40Heart, once be stronger than thy continent,Heart, once be stronger then thy Continent,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.49Itself with strength. Seal then, and all is done.It selfe with strength: Seale then and all is done.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.61Than she which by her death our Caesar tellsThen she which by her death, our Casar telles
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.67Thou then wouldst kill me. Do't; the time is come.thou then would'st kill me. / Doo't, the time is come:
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.78Come then; for with a wound I must be cured.Come then: for with a wound I must be cur'd.
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.81When I did make thee free, swor'st thou not thenWhen I did make thee free, swor'st yu not then
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.85Turn from me then that noble countenanceTurne from me then that Noble countenance,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.88.2Then let it do at onceThen let it do at once
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.94Why, there then! Thus I do escape the sorrowWhy there then: / Thus I do escape the sorrow
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.95.2Thrice nobler than myself,Thrice-Nobler then my selfe,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xiv.101As to a lover's bed. Come then; and, Eros,As to a Louers bed. Come then, and Eros,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xv.62No better than a sty? O, see, my women,No better then a Stye? Oh see my women:
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xv.79Become a dog that's mad; then is it sinBecome a Dogge that's mad: Then is it sinne,
Antony and CleopatraAC IV.xv.85We'll bury him; and then, what's brave, what's noble,Wee'l bury him: And then, what's braue, what's Noble,
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.18No less beg than a kingdom. If he pleaseNo lesse begge then a Kingdome: If he please
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.63These thoughts of horror further than you shallThese thoughts of horror further then you shall
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.109He'll lead me, then, in triumph?Hee'l leade me then in Triumph.
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.125We will extenuate rather than enforce.We will extenuate rather then inforce:
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.146I had rather seel my lips than to my perilI had rather seele my lippes, / Then to my perill
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.155Than love that's hired! What, goest thou back? Thou shaltThen loue that's hyr'd? What goest thou backe, yu shalt
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.224.1Are stronger than mine eyes.Are stronger then mine eyes.
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.251of them no longer than yesterday; a very honestof them no longer then yesterday, a very honest
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.290Come then, and take the last warmth of my lips.Come then, and take the last warmth of my Lippes.
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.318I'll mend it, and then play – Ile mend it, and then play---
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.338.2Poisoned, then.Poyson'd then.
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.360No less in pity than his glory whichNo lesse in pitty, then his Glory which
Antony and CleopatraAC V.ii.363And then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, seeAnd then to Rome. Come, Dolabella, see
As You Like ItAYL I.i.29What mar you then, sir?What mar you then sir?
As You Like ItAYL I.i.41Ay, better than him I am before knows me: II, better then him I am before knowes mee: I
As You Like ItAYL I.i.74I will no further offend you than becomes meI will no further offend you, then becomes mee
As You Like ItAYL I.i.105of her uncle than his own daughter, and never two ladiesof her Vncle, then his owne daughter, and neuer two Ladies
As You Like ItAYL I.i.154yet I know not why – hates nothing more than he. Yet(yet I know not why) hates nothing more then he: yet
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.2Dear Celia, I show more mirth than I amDeere Cellia; I show more mirth then I am
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.27than with safety of a pure blush thou mayst in honourthen with safety of a pure blush, thou maist in honor
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.29What shall be our sport then?What shall be our sport then?
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.72By my knavery – if I had it – then I were;By my knauerie (if I had it) then I were:
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.91Then shall we be news-crammed.Then shal we be newes-cram'd.
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.244.1More than your enemies.More then your enemies.
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.256More suits you to conceive than I to speak of.More suites you to conceiue, then I to speake of.
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.265Are dearer than the natural bond of sisters.Are deerer then the naturall bond of Sisters:
As You Like ItAYL I.ii.273Hereafter, in a better world than this,Hereafter in a better world then this,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.7Then there were two cousins laid up, when theThen there were two Cosens laid vp, when the
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.22O, they take the part of a better wrestler thanO they take the part of a better wrastler then
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.48As I do trust I am not – then, dear uncle,(As I doe trust I am not) then deere Vncle,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.62Then, good my liege, mistake me not so muchThen good my Leige, mistake me not so much,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.67I did not then entreat to have her stay;I did not then intreat to haue her stay,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.80When she is gone. Then open not thy lips:When she is gone: then open not thy lips
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.83Pronounce that sentence then on me, my liege,Pronounce that sentence then on me my Leige,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.90I charge thee, be not thou more grieved than I am.I charge thee be not thou more grieu'd then I am.
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.94No, hath not? Rosalind lacks then the loveNo, hath not? Rosaline lacks then the loue
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.108Beauty provoketh thieves sooner than gold.Beautie prouoketh theeues sooner then gold.
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.113Because that I am more than common tall,Because that I am more then common tall,
As You Like ItAYL I.iii.122I'll have no worse a name than Jove's own page,Ile haue no worse a name then Ioues owne Page,
As You Like ItAYL II.i.3Than that of painted pomp? Are not these woodsThen that of painted pompe? Are not these woods
As You Like ItAYL II.i.4More free from peril than the envious court?More free from perill then the enuious Court?
As You Like ItAYL II.i.28Than doth your brother that hath banished you.Then doth your brother that hath banish'd you:
As You Like ItAYL II.i.49To that which had too much.’ Then, being there alone,To that which had too must: then being there alone,
As You Like ItAYL II.i.68For then he's full of matter.For then he's full of matter.
As You Like ItAYL II.iii.76Than to die well, and not my master's debtor.Then to die well, and not my Masters debter.
As You Like ItAYL II.iv.10than bear you: yet I should bear no cross if I did bearthen beare you: yet I should beare no crosse if I did beare
As You Like ItAYL II.iv.29O, thou didst then never love so heartily.Oh thou didst then neuer loue so hartily,
As You Like ItAYL II.iv.52Thou speakest wiser than thou art ware of.Thou speak'st wiser then thou art ware of.
As You Like ItAYL II.iv.73And wish, for her sake more than for mine own,And wish for her sake more then for mine owne,
As You Like ItAYL II.v.21More at your request than to please myself.More at your request, then to please my selfe.
As You Like ItAYL II.v.22Well then, if ever I thank any man, I'll thank you;Well then, if euer I thanke any man, Ile thanke you:
As You Like ItAYL II.vi.8nearer death than thy powers. (Raising him) For my sakeneerer death, then thy powers. / For my sake
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.20And then he drew a dial from his poke,And then he drew a diall from his poake,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.27And then from hour to hour we rot, and rot,And then from houre to houre, we rot, and rot,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.83There then, how then, what then? Let me see whereinThere then, how then, what then, let me see wherein
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.85Then he hath wronged himself; if he be free,Then he hath wrong'd himselfe: if he be free,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.86Why then my taxing like a wild goose flies,why then my taxing like a wild-goose flies
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.104More than your force move us to gentleness.more then your force / Moue vs to gentlenesse.
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.128Then but forbear your food a little whileThen but forbeare your food a little while:
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.139Presents more woeful pageants than the scenePresents more wofull Pageants then the Sceane
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.146Then, the whining schoolboy, with his satchelThen, the whining Schoole-boy with his Satchell
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.148Unwillingly to school; and then the lover,Vnwillingly to schoole. And then the Louer,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.150Made to his mistress' eyebrow; then, a soldier,Made to his Mistresse eye-brow. Then, a Soldier,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.154Even in the cannon's mouth; and then, the justice,Euen in the Canons mouth: And then, the Iustice
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.183Then hey-ho, the holly,The heigh ho, the holly,
As You Like ItAYL II.vii.193Then hey-ho, the holly,
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.33Then thou art damned.Then thou art damn'd.
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.40manners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickednessmaners, then thy manners must be wicked, and wickednes
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.64wise and perpend: civet is of a baser birth than tar, thewise and perpend: Ciuet is of a baser birth then Tarre, the
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.104Then to cart with Rosalind.then to cart with Rosalinde.
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.113I'll graff it with you, and then I shall graffIle graffe it with you, and then I shall graffe
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.114it with a medlar; then it will be the earliest fruitit with a Medler: then it will be the earliest fruit
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.161some of them had in them more feet than the versessome of them had in them more feete then the Verses
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.220To say ‘ ay ’ and ‘ no ’ to these particulars is more than toto say I and no, to these particulars, is more then to
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.294Then there is no true lover in the forest, elseThen there is no true Louer in the Forrest, else
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.321between term and term, and then they perceive not howbetweene Terme and Terme, and then they perceiue not how
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.329Your accent is something finer than you couldYour accent is something finer, then you could
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.363Then your hose should be ungartered, your bonnetthen your hose should be vngarter'd, your bonnet
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.368than seeming the lover of any other.then seeming the Louer of any other.
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.373than to confess she does: that is one of the points in thethen to confesse she do's: that is one of the points, in the
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.397would now like him, now loathe him; then entertainwould now like him, now loath him: then entertaine
As You Like ItAYL III.ii.398him, then forswear him; now weep for him, then spithim, then forswear him: now weepe for him, then spit
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.8 O knowledge ill-inhabited, worse than JoveO knowledge ill inhabited, worse then Ioue
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.12Understanding, it strikes a man more dead than a greatvnderstanding: it strikes a man more dead then a great
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.20Do you wish then that the gods had made meDo you wish then that the Gods had made me
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.54town is more worthier than a village, so is the foreheadTowne is more worthier then a village, so is the forehead
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.55of a married man more honourable than the bare browof a married man, more honourable then the bare brow
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.56of a bachelor; and by how much defence is better thanof a Batcheller: and by how much defence is better then
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.57no skill, by so much is a horn more precious than tono skill, by so much is a horne more precious then to
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.79wainscot; then one of you will prove a shrunk panel and,Wainscot, then one of you wil proue a shrunke pannell, and
As You Like ItAYL III.iii.82be married of him than of another, for he is not like tobee married of him then of another, for he is not like to
As You Like ItAYL III.iv.7Something browner than Judas's. Marry, hisSomething browner then Iudasses: / Marrie his
As You Like ItAYL III.iv.28stronger than the word of a tapster; they are both thestronger then the word of a Tapster, they are both the
As You Like ItAYL III.v.7Than he that dies and lives by bloody drops?Then he that dies and liues by bloody drops?
As You Like ItAYL III.v.30Then shall you know the wounds invisibleThen shall you know the wouuds inuisible
As You Like ItAYL III.v.39Than without candle may go dark to bed – Then without Candle may goe darke to bed:
As You Like ItAYL III.v.42I see no more in you than in the ordinaryI see no more in you then in the ordinary
As You Like ItAYL III.v.52Than she a woman. 'Tis such fools as youThen she a woman. 'Tis such fooles as you
As You Like ItAYL III.v.56Than any of her lineaments can show her.Then any of her lineaments can show her:
As You Like ItAYL III.v.65I had rather hear you chide than this man woo.I had rather here you chide, then this man wooe.
As You Like ItAYL III.v.73For I am falser than vows made in wine.For I am falser then vowes made in wine:
As You Like ItAYL III.v.98Than thine own gladness that thou art employed.Then thine owne gladnesse, that thou art employd.
As You Like ItAYL III.v.103That the main harvest reaps. Loose now and thenThat the maine haruest reapes: loose now and then
As You Like ItAYL III.v.116Is his complexion; and faster than his tongueIs his complexion: and faster then his tongue
As You Like ItAYL III.v.122Than that mixed in his cheek; 'twas just the differenceThen that mixt in his cheeke: 'twas iust the difference
As You Like ItAYL III.v.128I have more cause to hate him than to love him,Haue more cause to hate him then to loue him,
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.4I am so: I do love it better than laughing.I am so: I doe loue it better then laughing.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.7modern censure worse than drunkards.moderne censure, worse then drunkards.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.9Why then, 'tis good to be a post.Why then 'tis good to be a poste.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.21see other men's; then, to have seen much and to havesee other mens; then to haue seene much, and to haue
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.25rather have a fool to make me merry than experience torather haue a foole to make me merrie, then experience to
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.28Nay then, God buy you, an you talk in blank verse.Nay then God buy you, and you talke in blanke verse.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.50than you make a woman. Besides he brings his destinythen you make a woman: besides, he brings his destinie
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.60of a better leer than you.of a better leere then you.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.72Then she puts you to entreaty, and thereThen she puts you to entreatie, and there
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.77or I should think my honesty ranker than my wit.or I should thinke my honestie ranker then my wit.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.84Then, in mine own person, I die.Then in mine owne person, I die.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.104Then love me, Rosalind.Then loue me Rosalind.
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.112Why then, can one desire too much of a goodWhy then, can one desire too much of a good
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.124Then you must say ‘ I take thee, Rosalind, forThen you must say, I take thee Rosalind for
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.139of thee than a Barbary cock-pigeon over his hen, moreof thee, then a Barbary cocke-pidgeon ouer his hen, more
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.140clamorous than a parrot against rain, more new-fangledclamorous then a Parrat against raine, more new-fangled
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.141than an ape, more giddy in my desires than a monkey;then an ape, more giddy in my desires, then a monkey:
As You Like ItAYL IV.i.182With no less religion than if thou wert indeedWith no lesse religion, then if thou wert indeed
As You Like ItAYL IV.ii.12Then sing him home, the rest shall bearThen sing him home, the rest shall beare
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.37Than in their countenance. Will you hear the letter?Then in their countenance: will you heare the letter?
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.56How then might your prayers move?How then might your praiers moue?
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.64And then I'll study how to die.And then Ile studie how to die.
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.85Then should I know you by description.Then should I know you by description,
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.89And browner than her brother'. Are not youAnd browner then her brother: are not you
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.129But kindness, nobler ever than revenge,But kindnesse, nobler euer then reuenge,
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.130And nature, stronger than his just occasion,And Nature stronger then his iust occasion,
As You Like ItAYL IV.iii.172Well then, take a good heart, and counterfeit toWell then, take a good heart, and counterfeit to
As You Like ItAYL V.i.39Then learn this of me. To have is to have.Then learne this of me, To haue, is to haue.
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.27Ay, and greater wonders than that.I, and greater wonders then that.
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.46Why, then, tomorrow I cannot serve yourWhy then to morrow, I cannot serue your
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.49I will weary you then no longer with idleI will wearie you then no longer with idle
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.50talking. Know of me then, for now I speak to sometalking. Know of me then (for now I speake to some
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.54are; neither do I labour for a greater esteem than mayare: neither do I labor for a greater esteeme then may
As You Like ItAYL V.ii.56yourself good, and not to grace me. Believe then, if youyour selfe good, and not to grace me. Beleeue then, if you
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.82I durst go no further than the Lie Circumstantial,I durst go no further then the lye circumstantial:
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.98then I said so;’ and they shook hands and sworethen I saide so: and they shooke hands, and swore
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.105Then is there mirth in heaven,Then is there mirth in heauen,
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.118Why then, my love adieu!why then my loue adieu
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.141High wedlock then be honoured;High wedlock then be honored:
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.190I am for other than for dancing measures.I am for other, then for dancing meazures.
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.197but it is no more unhandsome than to see the lord thebut it is no more vnhandsome, then to see the Lord the
As You Like ItAYL V.iv.202I in, then, that am neither a good epilogue nor cannotI in then, that am neither a good Epilogue, nor cannot
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.i.33Than I to speak my griefs unspeakable.Then I to speake my griefes vnspeakeable:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.i.78And left the ship, then sinking-ripe, to us.And left the ship then sinking ripe to vs.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.i.155And live. If no, then thou art doomed to die.And liue: if no, then thou art doom'd to die:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.ii.14And then return and sleep within mine inn;And then returne and sleepe within mine Inne,
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.ii.23And then go to my inn and dine with me?And then goe to my Inne and dine with me?
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.ii.30Farewell till then. I will go lose myselfFarewell till then: I will goe loose my selfe,
The Comedy of ErrorsCE I.ii.69Reserve them till a merrier hour than this.Reserue them till a merrier houre then this:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.10Why should their liberty than ours be more?Why should their libertie then ours be more? 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.23Of more pre-eminence than fish and fowls,Of more preheminence then fish and fowles, 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.25Then let your will attend on their accords.Then let your will attend on their accords. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.90From my poor cheek? Then he hath wasted it.From my poore cheeke? then he hath wasted it. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.93Unkindness blunts it more than marble hard.Vnkindnesse blunts it more then marble hard. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.i.97By him not ruined? Then is he the groundBy him not ruin'd? Then is he the ground 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.46Why, first: for flouting me; and then wherefore:Why first for flowting me, and then wherefore, 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.62Well, sir, then 'twill beWell sir, then 'twill be 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.89man hath more hair than wit.man hath more haire then wit. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.100Sure ones, then.Sure ones then
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.103Certain ones, then.Certaine ones then
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.129That thou art then estranged from thyself?That thou art then estranged from thy selfe? 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.132Am better than thy dear self's better part.Am better then thy deere selfes better part. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.154Keep then fair league and truce with thy true bed,Keepe then faire league and truce with thy true bed, 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE II.ii.175How can she thus then call us by our names? – How can she thus then call vs by our names? 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.6Then for her wealth's sake use her with more kindness;Then for her wealths-sake vse her with more kindnesse:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.25Then, gentle brother, get you in again.Then gentle brother get you in againe;
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.32Than our earth's wonder, more than earth divine.Then our earths wonder, more then earth diuine.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.40Transform me, then, and to your power I'll yield.Transforme me then, and to your powre Ile yeeld.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.41But if that I am I, then well I knowBut if that I am I, then well I know,
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.103she'll burn a week longer than the whole world.she'l burne a weeke longer then the whole World.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.117Then she bears someThen she beares some
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.120than from hip to hip. She is spherical, like a globe. Ithen from hippe o hippe: she is sphericall, like a globe: I
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.183And then receive my money for the chain.And then receiue my money for the chaine.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE III.ii.193If any ship put out, then straight away!If any ship put out, then straight away.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.i.31Than I stand debted to this gentleman.Then I stand debted to this Gentleman,
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.i.40Then you will bring the chain to her yourself.Then you will bring the Chaine to her your selfe.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.i.88And then she bears away. Our fraughtage, sir,And then sir she beares away. Our fraughtage sir,
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.9Then swore he that he was a stranger here. Then swore he that he was a stranger heere.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.11.1Then pleaded I for you. Then pleaded I for you.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.15First he did praise my beauty, then my speech. First, he did praise my beautie, then my speech.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.23Who would be jealous, then, of such a one? Who would be iealous then of such a one?
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.25Ah, but I think him better than I say, Ah but I thinke him better then I say:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.32No. He's in Tartar limbo, worse than hell. No, he's in Tartar limbo, worse then hell:
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.ii.57Time is a very bankrupt, and owes more than he's worth to season. Time is a verie bankerout, and owes more then he's worth to season.
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.iii.27do more exploits with his mace than a morris-pike.doe more exploits with his Mace, then a Moris Pike. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.iii.39and then were you hindered by the sergeant to tarry forand then were you hindred by the Serieant to tarry for 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE IV.iii.65Avoid then, fiend. What tellest thou me of supping?Auoid then fiend, what tel'st thou me of supping? 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.70Poisons more deadly than a mad dog's tooth.Poisons more deadly then a mad dogges tooth. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.85The consequence is, then, thy jealous fitsThe consequence is then, thy iealous fits 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.93Then let your servants bring my husband forth.Then let your seruants bring my husband forth 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.154We came again to bind them. Then they fledWe came againe to binde them: then they fled 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.194That then I lost for thee, now grant me justice!That then I lost for thee, now grant me iustice. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.220Could witness it, for he was with me then,Could witnesse it: for he was with me then
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.233Then fairly I bespoke the officerThen fairely I bespoke the Officer 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.246Cries out I was possessed. Then all togetherCries out, I was possest. Then altogether 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.264And then you fled into this abbey here,And then you fled into this Abbey heere, 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.361What then became of them I cannot tell.What then became of them, I cannot tell: 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.375Did call me brother. (To Luciana) What I told you thenDid call me brother. What I told you then
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.423We'll draw cuts for the senior. Till then, lead thou first.Wee'l draw Cuts for the Signior, till then, lead thou first. 
The Comedy of ErrorsCE V.i.424Nay then, thus:Nay then thus: 
CoriolanusCor I.i.4You are all resolved rather to die than toYou are all resolu'd rather to dy then to
CoriolanusCor I.i.69Of more strong link asunder than can everOf more strong linke assunder, then can euer
CoriolanusCor I.i.117.2What then?What then?
CoriolanusCor I.i.118'Fore me, this fellow speaks! What then? what then?Fore me, this Fellow speakes. / What then? What then?
CoriolanusCor I.i.120.2Well, what then?Well, what then?
CoriolanusCor I.i.171Than is the coal of fire upon the ice,Then is the coale of fire vpon the Ice,
CoriolanusCor I.i.223I am glad on't. Then we shall ha' means to ventI am glad on't, then we shall ha meanes to vent
CoriolanusCor I.i.234.2Then, worthy Martius,Then worthy Martius,
CoriolanusCor I.i.263Better be held nor more attained than byBetter be held, nor more attain'd then by
CoriolanusCor I.i.267Will then cry out of Martius, ‘ O, if heWill then cry out of Martius: Oh, if he
CoriolanusCor I.i.276More than his singularity, he goesMore then his singularity, he goes
CoriolanusCor I.ii.13Who is of Rome worse hated than of you,(Who is of Rome worse hated then of you)
CoriolanusCor I.iii.4honour than in the embracements of his bed where heHonor, then in the embracements of his Bed, where he
CoriolanusCor I.iii.10become such a person – that it was no better then picture-likebecome such a person, that it was no better then Picture-like
CoriolanusCor I.iii.16than now in first seeing he had proved himself athen now in first seeing he had proued himselfe a
CoriolanusCor I.iii.19then?then?
CoriolanusCor I.iii.20Then his good report should have been myThen his good report should haue beene my
CoriolanusCor I.iii.23none less dear than thine and my good Martius, I hadnone lesse deere then thine, and my good Martius, I had
CoriolanusCor I.iii.24rather had eleven die nobly for their country than onerather had eleuen dye Nobly for their Countrey, then one
CoriolanusCor I.iii.36With his mailed hand then wiping, forth he goes,With his mail'd hand, then wiping, forth he goes
CoriolanusCor I.iii.41Than gilt his trophy. The breasts of Hecuba,Then gilt his Trophe. The brests of Hecuba
CoriolanusCor I.iii.43Than Hector's forehead when it spit forth bloodThen Hectors forhead, when it spit forth blood
CoriolanusCor I.iii.57than look upon his schoolmaster.then looke vpon his Schoolmaster.
CoriolanusCor I.iii.107In troth, I think she would. Fare you well, then.In troth I thinke she would: / Fare you well then.
CoriolanusCor I.iii.112Well, then, farewell.Well, then farewell.
CoriolanusCor I.iv.9Then shall we hear their 'larum, and they ours.Then shall we heare their Larum, & they Ours.
CoriolanusCor I.iv.14No, nor a man that fears you less than he:No, nor a man that feares you lesse then he,
CoriolanusCor I.iv.15That's lesser than a little. (Drum afar off) Hark! our drumsThat's lesser then a little: Drum a farre off. Hearke, our Drummes
CoriolanusCor I.iv.17Rather than they shall pound us up. Our gates,Rather then they shall pound vs vp our Gates,
CoriolanusCor I.iv.25With hearts more proof than shields. Advance, brave Titus.With hearts more proofe then Shields. / Aduance braue Titus,
CoriolanusCor I.iv.33Further than seen, and one infect anotherFarther then seene, and one infect another
CoriolanusCor I.v.11Piercing our Romans. Then, valiant Titus, takePiercing our Romanes: Then Valiant Titus take
CoriolanusCor I.v.19Than dangerous to me. To Aufidius thusThen dangerous to me: To Auffidious thus,
CoriolanusCor I.v.24Than those she placeth highest. So farewell.Then those she placeth highest: So farewell.
CoriolanusCor I.vi.13.1And then I came away.And then I came away.
CoriolanusCor I.vi.26More than I know the sound of Martius' tongueMore then I know the sound of Martius Tongue
CoriolanusCor I.vi.45.1From rascals worse than they.From Rascals worse then they.
CoriolanusCor I.vi.70Lesser his person than an ill report;Lessen his person, then an ill report:
CoriolanusCor I.vi.72And that his country's dearer than himself;And that his Countries deerer then himselfe,
CoriolanusCor I.viii.2.1Worse than a promise-breaker.Worse then a Promise-breaker.
CoriolanusCor I.viii.4More than thy fame and envy. Fix thy foot.More then thy Fame and Enuy: Fix thy foot.
CoriolanusCor I.ix.22Worse than a theft, no less than a traducement,worse then a Theft, / No lesse then a Traducement,
CoriolanusCor I.ix.53More cruel to your good report than gratefulMore cruell to your good report, then gratefull
CoriolanusCor I.ix.57Then reason safely with you. Therefore be it known,Then reason safely with you: Therefore be it knowne,
CoriolanusCor I.ix.84But then Aufidius was within my view,But then Auffidius was within my view,
CoriolanusCor II.i.39What then, sir?What then sir?
CoriolanusCor II.i.40Why, then you should discover a brace of unmeriting,Why then you should discouer a brace of vnmeriting,
CoriolanusCor II.i.49of the night than with the forehead of the morning.of the night, then with the forhead of the morning.
CoriolanusCor II.i.67then rejourn the controversy of threepence to a secondthen reiourne the Controuersie of three-pence to a second
CoriolanusCor II.i.77giber for the table than a necessary bencher in thegyber for the Table, then a necessary Bencher in the
CoriolanusCor II.i.113than a horse-drench. Is he not wounded? He was wontthen a Horse-drench. Is he not wounded? he was wont
CoriolanusCor II.i.154Which, being advanced, declines, and then men die.Which being aduanc'd, declines, and then men dye.
CoriolanusCor II.i.196.1Than sway with them in theirs.Then sway with them in theirs.
CoriolanusCor II.i.214.2Then our office mayThen our Office may,
CoriolanusCor II.i.230Than carry it but by the suit of the gentry to himthen carry it, / But by the suite of the Gentry to him,
CoriolanusCor II.i.232Than have him hold that purpose and to put itthen haue him hold that purpose, and to put it
CoriolanusCor II.i.234It shall be to him then as our good wills,It shall be to him then, as our good wills;
CoriolanusCor II.i.243Than camels in the war, who have their provandThen Cammels in their Warre, who haue their Prouand
CoriolanusCor II.ii.18greater devotion than they can render it him, and leavesgreater deuotion, then they can render it him; and leaues
CoriolanusCor II.ii.49Than we to stretch it out. (To the Tribunes) Masters o'th' people,Then we to stretch it out. Masters a'th' People,
CoriolanusCor II.ii.57A kinder value of the people thana kinder value of the People, then
CoriolanusCor II.ii.62.1Than the rebuke you give it.then the rebuke you giue it.
CoriolanusCor II.ii.68.1Than hear say how I got them.Then heare say how I got them.
CoriolanusCor II.ii.74When the alarum were struck than idly sitWhen the Alarum were strucke, then idly sit
CoriolanusCor II.ii.79Than one on's ears to hear it. Proceed, Cominius.Then on ones Eares to heare it. Proceed Cominius.
CoriolanusCor II.ii.87Beyond the mark of others. Our then dictator,Beyond the marke of others: our then Dictator,
CoriolanusCor II.ii.114His ready sense, then straight his doubled spiritHis readie sence: then straight his doubled spirit
CoriolanusCor II.ii.125Than misery itself would give, rewardsThen Miserie it selfe would giue, rewards
CoriolanusCor II.ii.132.2It then remainsIt then remaines,
CoriolanusCor II.ii.152 Flourish. Cornets. Then exeunt.Flourish Cornets. Then Exeunt.
CoriolanusCor II.iii.71Well then, I pray, your priceWell then I pray, your price
CoriolanusCor II.iii.98hat than my heart, I will practise the insinuating nod andHat, then my Heart, I will practice the insinuating nod, and
CoriolanusCor II.iii.113Than crave the hire which first we do deserve.Then craue the higher, which first we do deserue.
CoriolanusCor II.iii.120For truth to o'erpeer. Rather than fool it so,For Truth to o're-peere. Rather then foole it so,
CoriolanusCor II.iii.186Than what he stood for, so his gracious natureThen what he stood for: so his gracious nature
CoriolanusCor II.iii.215Than dogs that are as often beat for barkingThen Dogges, that are as often beat for barking,
CoriolanusCor II.iii.229More after our commandment than as guidedmore after our commandment, / Then as guided
CoriolanusCor II.iii.232Than what you should, made you against the grainThen what you should, made you against the graine
CoriolanusCor II.iii.256Than stay, past doubt, for greater.Then stay past doubt, for greater:
CoriolanusCor III.i.1Tullus Aufidius then had made new head?Tullus Auffidius then had made new head.
CoriolanusCor III.i.4So then the Volsces stand but as at first,So then the Volces stand but as at first,
CoriolanusCor III.i.50Why then should I be consul? By yond clouds,Why then should I be Consull? by yond Clouds
CoriolanusCor III.i.98Then vail your ignorance; if none, awakeThen vale your Ignorance: If none, awake
CoriolanusCor III.i.107Than ever frowned in Greece. By Jove himself,Then euer frown'd in Greece. By Ioue himselfe,
CoriolanusCor III.i.120More worthier than their voices. They know the cornMore worthier then their Voyces. They know the Corne
CoriolanusCor III.i.130Of our so frank donation. Well, what then?Of our so franke Donation. Well, what then?
CoriolanusCor III.i.150You that will be less fearful than discreet,You that will be lesse fearefull, then discreet,
CoriolanusCor III.i.152More than you doubt the change on't, that preferMore then you doubt the change on't: That preferre
CoriolanusCor III.i.168Then were they chosen. In a better hourThen were they chosen: in a better houre,
CoriolanusCor III.i.268Than the severity of the public power,Then the seuerity of the publike Power,
CoriolanusCor III.i.283.1Than so much loss of time.Then so much losse of time.
CoriolanusCor III.i.283.2Speak briefly then,Speake breefely then,
CoriolanusCor III.i.298Which I dare vouch is more than that he hath(Which I dare vouch, is more then that he hath
CoriolanusCor III.i.305Being once gangrened, is not then respectedBeing once gangren'd, is not then respected
CoriolanusCor III.i.328Be you then as the people's officer.be you then as the peoples officer:
CoriolanusCor III.ii.36.2Well, what then? What then?Well, what then? what then?
CoriolanusCor III.ii.39.1Must I then do't to them?Must I then doo't to them?
CoriolanusCor III.ii.59Than to take in a town with gentle words,Then to take in a Towne with gentle words,
CoriolanusCor III.ii.67How you can frown, than spend a fawn upon 'emHow you can frowne, then spend a fawne vpon 'em,
CoriolanusCor III.ii.77More learned than the ears – waving thy head,More learned then the eares, wauing thy head,
CoriolanusCor III.ii.92.1Than flatter him in a bower.Then flatter him in a Bower.
CoriolanusCor III.ii.123.2At thy choice, then.At thy choice then:
CoriolanusCor III.ii.125Than thou of them. Come all to ruin. LetThen thou of them. Come all to ruine, let
CoriolanusCor III.ii.126Thy mother rather feel thy pride than fearThy Mother rather feele thy Pride, then feare
CoriolanusCor III.ii.141Than are upon you yet.Then are vpon you yet.
CoriolanusCor III.ii.145Well, mildly be it then – mildly!Well mildely be it then, Mildely.
CoriolanusCor III.iii.15For death, for fine, or banishment, then let themFor death, for fine, or Banishment, then let them
CoriolanusCor III.iii.28Be reined again to temperance, then he speaksBe rein'd againe to Temperance, then he speakes
CoriolanusCor III.iii.42Shall I be charged no further than this present?Shall I be charg'd no further then this present?
CoriolanusCor III.iii.57.1Rather than envy you.Rather then enuy you.
CoriolanusCor III.iii.62Say, then. 'Tis true, I ought so.Say then: 'tis true, I ought so
CoriolanusCor III.iii.113More holy and profound, than mine own life,More holy, and profound, then mine owne life,
CoriolanusCor III.iii.115And treasure of my loins. Then if I wouldAnd treasure of my Loynes: then if I would
CoriolanusCor IV.i.22Thy tears are salter than a younger man'sThy teares are salter then a yonger mans,
CoriolanusCor IV.i.31Makes feared and talked of more than seen – your sonMakes fear'd, and talk'd of more then seene: your Sonne
CoriolanusCor IV.i.36More than a wild exposture to each chanceMore then a wilde exposture, to each chance
CoriolanusCor IV.ii.5.1Than when it was a-doing.Then when it was a dooing.
CoriolanusCor IV.ii.20.1Than thou hast spoken words?Then thou hast spoken words.
CoriolanusCor IV.ii.21More noble blows than ever thou wise words,Moe Noble blowes, then euer yu wise words.
CoriolanusCor IV.ii.25.2What then?What then?
CoriolanusCor IV.ii.25.3What then!What then?
CoriolanusCor IV.iii.14Hath been? Is it ended then? Our state thinks notHath bin; is it ended then? Our State thinks not
CoriolanusCor IV.iv.4Have I heard groan and drop. Then know me not,Haue I heard groane, and drop: Then know me not,
CoriolanusCor IV.v.46an ass it is! Then thou dwell'st with daws too?an Asse it is, then thou dwel'st with Dawes too?
CoriolanusCor IV.v.50Ay, 'tis an honester service than to meddleI, tis an honester seruice, then to meddle
CoriolanusCor IV.v.87Stand I before thee here. Then if thou hastStand I before thee heere: Then if thou hast
CoriolanusCor IV.v.97Th'art tired, then, in a word, I also amTh'art tyr'd, then in a word, I also am
CoriolanusCor IV.v.109Than thee, all-noble Martius. Let me twineThen thee all-Noble Martius. Let me twine
CoriolanusCor IV.v.120Than when I first my wedded mistress sawThen when I first my wedded Mistris saw
CoriolanusCor IV.v.149And more a friend than e'er an enemy;And more a Friend, then ere an Enemie,
CoriolanusCor IV.v.163him than I could think.him, then I could think.
CoriolanusCor IV.v.167than he you wot one.then he, / You wot one.
CoriolanusCor IV.v.225Why, then we shall have a stirringWhy then wee shall haue a stirring
CoriolanusCor IV.v.232more bastard children than war's a destroyer of men.more bastard Children, then warres a destroyer of men.
CoriolanusCor IV.v.238Reason: because they then lessReason, because they then lesse
CoriolanusCor IV.vi.7Dissentious numbers pestering streets than seeDissentious numbers pestring streets, then see
CoriolanusCor IV.vi.28Than when these fellows ran about the streets,Then when these Fellowes ran about the streets,
CoriolanusCor IV.vi.74Than violent'st contrariety.Then violent'st Contrariety.
CoriolanusCor IV.vi.92Made by some other deity than Nature,Made by some other Deity then Nature,
CoriolanusCor IV.vi.95Than boys pursuing summer butterflies,Then Boyes pursuing Summer Butter-flies,
CoriolanusCor IV.vii.9Even to my person, than I thought he wouldEuen to my person, then I thought he would
CoriolanusCor IV.vii.42Not to be other than one thing, not movingNot to be other then one thing, not moouing
CoriolanusCor IV.vii.57Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine.Thou art poor'st of all; then shortly art thou mine.
CoriolanusCor V.i.38More than the instant army we can make,More then the instant Armie we can make
CoriolanusCor V.i.44Unheard – what then?vnheard: what then?
CoriolanusCor V.i.52The veins unfilled, our blood is cold, and thenThe Veines vnfill'd, our blood is cold, and then
CoriolanusCor V.i.57Than in our priest-like fasts. Therefore I'll watch himThen in our Priest-like Fasts: therefore Ile watch him
CoriolanusCor V.i.59And then I'll set upon him.And then Ile set vpon him.
CoriolanusCor V.ii.37Then you should hate Rome, as he does.Then you should hate Rome, as he do's.
CoriolanusCor V.ii.67thee no worse than thy old father Menenius does! O mythee no worse then thy old Father Menenius do's. O my
CoriolanusCor V.ii.83Than pity note how much. Therefore be gone.Then pitty: Note how much, therefore be gone.
CoriolanusCor V.ii.84Mine ears against your suits are stronger thanMine eares against your suites, are stronger then
CoriolanusCor V.iii.22My wife comes foremost, then the honoured mouldMy wife comes formost, then the honour'd mould
CoriolanusCor V.iii.29Of stronger earth than others. My mother bows,Of stronger earth then others: my Mother bowes,
CoriolanusCor V.iii.52.1Than that of common sons.Then that of common Sonnes.
CoriolanusCor V.iii.53Whilst with no softer cushion than the flintWhil'st with no softer Cushion then the Flint
CoriolanusCor V.iii.58Then let the pebbles on the hungry beachThen let the Pibbles on the hungry beach
CoriolanusCor V.iii.59Fillip the stars. Then let the mutinous windsFillop the Starres: Then, let the mutinous windes
CoriolanusCor V.iii.97How more unfortunate than all living womenHow more vnfortunate then all liuing women
CoriolanusCor V.iii.122Than seek the end of one, thou shalt no soonerThen seeke the end of one; thou shalt no sooner
CoriolanusCor V.iii.123March to assault thy country than to tread – March to assault thy Country, then to treade
CoriolanusCor V.iii.128I'll run away till I am bigger, but then I'll fight.Ile run away / Till I am bigger, but then Ile fight.
CoriolanusCor V.iii.158Than can our reasons. There's no man in the worldThen can our Reasons. There's no man in the world
CoriolanusCor V.iii.171Than pity to our prayers. Down! An end;Then pitty to our Prayers. Downe: an end,
CoriolanusCor V.iii.177Than thou hast to deny't. Come, let us go.Then thou hast to deny't. Come, let vs go:
CoriolanusCor V.iii.182And then I'll speak a little.& then Ile speak a litle
CoriolanusCor V.iii.205A better witness back than words, which we,A better witnesse backe then words, which we
CoriolanusCor V.iv.14than a creeping thing.then a creeping thing.
CoriolanusCor V.iv.17mother now than an eight-year-old horse. The tartnessMother now, then an eight yeare old horse. The tartnesse
CoriolanusCor V.iv.28mercy in him than there is milk in a male tiger. Thatmercy in him, then there is milke in a male-Tyger, that
CoriolanusCor V.vi.44.1For no less spoil than glory – For no lesse Spoile, then Glory.
CoriolanusCor V.vi.73Than when I parted hence, but still subsistingThen when I parted hence: but still subsisting
CoriolanusCor V.vi.78Doth more than counterpoise a full third partDoth more then counterpoize a full third part
CoriolanusCor V.vi.81Than shame to th' Romans. And we here deliver,Then shame to th' Romaines. And we heere deliuer
CymbelineCym I.i.2No more obey the heavens than our courtiersno more obey the Heauens / Then our Courtiers:
CymbelineCym I.i.26Crush him together, rather than unfoldCrush him together, rather then vnfold
CymbelineCym I.i.37Then old, and fond of issue, took such sorrowThen old, and fond of yssue, tooke such sorrow
CymbelineCym I.ii.26Than doth become a man. I will remainThen doth become a man. I will remaine
CymbelineCym I.ii.62.1More sharp than this is.More sharpe then this is.
CymbelineCym I.ii.93But that my master rather played than foughtBut that my Master rather plaid, then fought,
CymbelineCym I.iii.5If my shirt were bloody, then to shift it. Have I hurtIf my Shirt were bloody, then to shift it. / Haue I hurt
CymbelineCym I.iv.6.1Then waved his handkerchief?Then wau'd his Handkerchiefe?
CymbelineCym I.iv.7Senseless linen, happier therein than I!Senselesse Linnen, happier therein then I:
CymbelineCym I.iv.21The smallness of a gnat, to air: and thenThe smalnesse of a Gnat, to ayre: and then
CymbelineCym I.iv.32T' encounter me with orisons, for thenT'encounter me with Orisons, for then
CymbelineCym I.v.1Believe it sir, I have seen him in Britain: he was thenBeleeue it Sir, I haue seene him in Britaine; hee was then
CymbelineCym I.v.4then have looked on him without the help of admiration,then haue look'd on him, without the help of Admiration,
CymbelineCym I.v.7You speak of him when he was less furnished thanYou speake of him when he was lesse furnish'd, then
CymbelineCym I.v.13he must be weighed rather by her value than hishe must be weighed rather by her valew, then his
CymbelineCym I.v.16And then his banishment.And then his banishment.
CymbelineCym I.v.25have been often bound for no less than my life. – haue bin often bound for no lesse then my life.
CymbelineCym I.v.32rather than story him in his own hearing.rather then story him in his owne hearing.
CymbelineCym I.v.39purpose as then each bore, upon importance of sopurpose, as then each bore, vpon importance of so
CymbelineCym I.v.41By your pardon, sir, I was then a young traveller,By your pardon Sir, I was then a young Traueller,
CymbelineCym I.v.42rather shunned to go even with what I heard than inrather shun'd to go euen with what I heard, then in
CymbelineCym I.v.58less attemptable than any the rarest of our ladies inlesse attemptible then any, the rarest of our Ladies in
CymbelineCym I.v.76More than the world enjoys.More then the world enioyes.
CymbelineCym I.v.108confidence than her reputation. And to bar yourConfidence, then her Reputation. And to barre your
CymbelineCym I.v.126no more advantage than the opportunity of ano more aduantage then the opportunitie of a
CymbelineCym I.vi.39Then afterward up higher: but there isThen afterward vp higher: but there is
CymbelineCym I.vi.41More than the locking up the spirits a time,More then the locking vp the Spirits a time,
CymbelineCym I.vi.50I'll tell thee on the instant, thou art thenIle tell thee on the instant, thou art then
CymbelineCym I.vi.72As thou'lt desire: and then myself, I chiefly,As thou'lt desire: and then my selfe, I cheefely,
CymbelineCym I.vii.96Than to be sure they do – for certaintiesThen to be sure they do. For Certainties
CymbelineCym I.vii.98The remedy then born – discover to meThe remedy then borne. Discouer to me
CymbelineCym I.vii.104Fixing it only here; should I – damned thenFiering it onely heere, should I (damn'd then)
CymbelineCym I.vii.108With labour – then by-peeping in an eyeWith labour:) then by peeping in an eye
CymbelineCym I.vii.137More noble than that runagate to your bed,More Noble then that runnagate to your bed,
CymbelineCym I.vii.171More than a mortal seeming. Be not angry,More then a mortall seeming. Be not angrie
CymbelineCym II.i.3pound on't: and then a whoreson jackanapespound on't: and then a whorson Iacke-an-Apes,
CymbelineCym II.i.59More hateful than the foul expulsion isMore hatefull then the foule expulsion is
CymbelineCym II.i.60Of thy dear husband, than that horrid actOf thy deere Husband. Then that horrid Act
CymbelineCym II.ii.3I have read three hours then: mine eyes are weak,I haue read three houres then: / Mine eyes are weake,
CymbelineCym II.ii.16And whiter than the sheets! That I might touch!And whiter then the Sheetes: that I might touch,
CymbelineCym II.ii.40Stronger than ever law could make; this secretStronger then euer Law could make; this Secret
CymbelineCym II.iii.18then let her consider.then let her consider.
CymbelineCym II.iii.43.1And then she's yours.And then she's yours.
CymbelineCym II.iii.78Than some whose tailors are as dear as yoursThen some whose Taylors are as deere as yours,
CymbelineCym II.iii.110.1You felt than make't my boast.You felt, then make't my boast.
CymbelineCym II.iii.116Yet who than he more mean? – to knit their souls – (Yet who then he more meane) to knit their soules
CymbelineCym II.iii.131He never can meet more mischance than comeHe neuer can meete more mischance, then come
CymbelineCym II.iii.134In my respect, than all the hairs above thee,In my respect, then all the Heires aboue thee,
CymbelineCym II.iv.19In our not-fearing Britain than have tidingsIn our not-fearing-Britaine, then haue tydings
CymbelineCym II.iv.21Are men more ordered than when Julius CaesarAre men more order'd, then when Iulius Casar
CymbelineCym II.iv.38.2He was expected then,He was expected then,
CymbelineCym II.iv.95.2Then, if you can,Then if you can
CymbelineCym II.iv.112Than they are to their virtues, which is nothing.Then they are to their Vertues, which is nothing:
CymbelineCym II.iv.120More evident than this: for this was stolen.More euident then this: for this was stolne.
CymbelineCym III.i.7Than in his feats deserving it – for him,Then in his Feats deseruing it) for him,
CymbelineCym III.i.16Which then they had to take from's, to resumeWhich then they had to take from's, to resume
CymbelineCym III.i.36is stronger than it was at that time: and – as Iis stronger then it was at that time: and (as I
CymbelineCym III.i.4.3Say then to Caesar,Say then to Casar,
CymbelineCym III.i.64Caesar, that hath moe kings his servants than(Casar, that hath moe Kings his Seruants, then
CymbelineCym III.i.66Receive it from me, then. War and confusionReceyue it from me then. Warre, and Confusion
CymbelineCym III.ii.8More goddess-like than wife-like, such assaultsMore Goddesse-like, then Wife-like; such Assaults
CymbelineCym III.ii.53Glide thither in a day? Then, true Pisanio,Glide thither in a day? Then true Pisanio,
CymbelineCym III.ii.73Where horses have been nimbler than the sandsWhere Horses haue bin nimbler then the Sands
CymbelineCym III.ii.77A riding-suit; no costlier than would fitA Riding Suit: No costlier then would fit
CymbelineCym III.iii.14And you may then revolve what tales I have told youAnd you may then reuolue what Tales, I haue told you,
CymbelineCym III.iii.21Than is the full-winged eagle. O, this lifeThen is the full-wing'd Eagle. Oh this life,
CymbelineCym III.iii.22Is nobler than attending for a check:Is Nobler, then attending for a checke:
CymbelineCym III.iii.23Richer than doing nothing for a robe,Richer, then doing nothing for a Babe:
CymbelineCym III.iii.24Prouder than rustling in unpaid-for silk:Prouder, then rustling in vnpayd-for Silke:
CymbelineCym III.iii.60Was not far off: then was I as a treeWas not farre off: then was I as a Tree
CymbelineCym III.iii.72More pious debts to heaven than in allMore pious debts to Heauen, then in all
CymbelineCym III.iii.92And thus I set my foot on's neck,’ even thenAnd thus I set my foote on's necke, euen then
CymbelineCym III.iv.35Whose edge is sharper than the sword, whose tongueWhose edge is sharper then the Sword, whose tongue
CymbelineCym III.iv.49Thou then look'dst like a villain: now, methinks,Thou then look'dst like a Villaine: now, me thinkes
CymbelineCym III.iv.53And, for I am richer than to hang by th' walls,And for I am richer then to hang by th'walles,
CymbelineCym III.iv.97Will then be panged by me. Prithee, dispatch:Will then be pang'd by me. Prythee dispatch,
CymbelineCym III.iv.102.2Do't, and to bed then.Doo't, and to bed then.
CymbelineCym III.iv.103.2Wherefore thenWherefore then
CymbelineCym III.iv.117.2Then, madam,Then Madam,
CymbelineCym III.iv.120But if I were as wise as honest, thenBut if I were as wise, as honest, then
CymbelineCym III.iv.137.1Then not in Britain must you bide.Then not in Britaine must you bide.
CymbelineCym III.iv.137.2Where then?Where then?
CymbelineCym III.iv.155.2Well then, here's the point:Well then, heere's the point:
CymbelineCym III.v.6To show less sovereignty than they, must needsTo shew lesse Soueraignty then they, must needs
CymbelineCym III.v.33A thing more made of malice than of duty,A thing more made of malice, then of duty,
CymbelineCym III.v.73Than lady, ladies, woman, from every oneThen Lady, Ladies, Woman, from euery one
CymbelineCym III.v.99.2Then, sir:Then Sir:
CymbelineCym III.v.137than my noble and natural person; together withthen my Noble and naturall person; together with
CymbelineCym III.v.140eyes; there shall she see my valour, which will theneyes; there shall she see my valour, which wil then
CymbelineCym III.vi.13Is sorer than to lie for need: and falsehoodIs sorer, then to lye for Neede: and Falshood
CymbelineCym III.vi.14Is worse in kings than beggars. My dear lord,Is worse in Kings, then Beggers. My deere Lord,
CymbelineCym III.vi.24Take, or lend. Ho! No answer? Then I'll enter.Take, or lend. Hoa? No answer? Then Ile enter.
CymbelineCym III.vii.17No elder than a boy!No elder then a Boy.
CymbelineCym III.vii.49Had been my father's sons, then had my prizeHad bin my Fathers Sonnes, then had my prize
CymbelineCym III.vii.55That had a court no bigger than this cave,That had a Court no bigger then this Caue,
CymbelineCym IV.ii.73More slavish did I ne'er than answeringMore slauish did I ne're, then answering
CymbelineCym IV.ii.84.2Hence, then, and thankHence then, and thanke
CymbelineCym IV.ii.105Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice,Which then he wore: the snatches in his voice,
CymbelineCym IV.ii.126Protects not us, then why should we be tender,Protects not vs, then why should we be tender,
CymbelineCym IV.ii.143Or they so suffering: then on good ground we fear,Or they so suffering: then on good ground we feare,
CymbelineCym 1IV.ii.145.1More perilous than the head.More perillous then the head.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.201.1Than have seen this.Then haue seene this.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.242.1Than priests and fanes that lie.Then Priests, and Phanes that lye.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.242.2We'll speak it then.Wee'l speake it then.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.257.1Come on then, and remove him.Come on then, and remoue him.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.360He'll then instruct us of this body. Young one,Hee'l then instruct vs of this body: Young one,
CymbelineCym IV.ii.364That – otherwise than noble Nature did – That (otherwise then noble Nature did)
CymbelineCym IV.ii.375Thou mov'st no less with thy complaining thanThou mou'st no lesse with thy complaining, then
CymbelineCym IV.ii.386Than thine own worth prefer thee: go with me.Then thine owne worth preferre thee: Go with me.
CymbelineCym IV.ii.395And rather father thee than master thee.And rather Father thee, then Master thee:
CymbelineCym IV.iii.30Than what you hear of. Come more, for more you're ready:Then what you heare of. Come more, for more you're ready:
CymbelineCym IV.iv.23Though Cloten then but young – you see, not wore him(Though Cloten then but young) you see, not wore him
CymbelineCym IV.iv.30.2Than be so,Then be so,
CymbelineCym V.i.4Must murder wives much better than themselvesMust murther Wiues much better then themselues
CymbelineCym V.i.30More valour in me than my habits show.More valour in me, then my habits show.
CymbelineCym V.ii.1.3poor soldier. They march over, and go out. Then enter again, inpoore Souldier. They march ouer, and goe out. Then enter againe in
CymbelineCym V.ii.1.5Iachimo, and then leaves himIachimo, and then leaues him.
CymbelineCym V.ii.11.1The battle continues, the Britons fly, Cymbeline is taken: then enterThe Battaile continues, the Britaines fly, Cymbeline is taken: Then enter
CymbelineCym V.ii.14.2and exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Innogenand Exeunt. Then enter Lucius, Iachimo, and Imogen.
CymbelineCym V.iii.9More plentiful than tools to do't, struck downMore plentifull, then Tooles to doo't: strooke downe
CymbelineCym V.iii.20The country base than to commit such slaughter,The Country base, then to commit such slaughter,
CymbelineCym V.iii.22Than those for preservation cased, or shame – Then those for preseruation cas'd, or shame)
CymbelineCym V.iii.39Upon the pikes o'th' hunters. Then beganVpon the Pikes o'th'Hunters. Then beganne
CymbelineCym V.iii.55Than to work any. Will you rhyme upon't,Then to worke any. Will you Rime vpon't,
CymbelineCym V.iii.72Sweet words; or hath moe ministers than weSweet words; or hath moe ministers then we
CymbelineCym V.iv.5Than one that's sick o'th' gout, since he had ratherThen one that's sicke o'th'Gowt, since he had rather
CymbelineCym V.iv.6Groan so in perpetuity than be curedGroane so in perpetuity, then be cur'd
CymbelineCym V.iv.9More than my shanks and wrists: you good gods, give meMore then my shanks, & wrists: you good Gods giue me
CymbelineCym V.iv.11Then free for ever. Is't enough I am sorry?Then free for euer. Is't enough I am sorry?
CymbelineCym V.iv.14I cannot do it better than in gyves,I cannot do it better then in Gyues,
CymbelineCym V.iv.15Desired more than constrained: to satisfy,Desir'd, more then constrain'd, to satisfie
CymbelineCym V.iv.17No stricter render of me than my all.No stricter render of me, then my All.
CymbelineCym V.iv.18I know you are more clement than vile men,I know you are more clement then vilde men,
CymbelineCym V.iv.30.4 before them. Then, after other music, follow the two young Leonatibefore them. Then after other Musicke, followes the two young Leonati
CymbelineCym V.iv.39Whose father then – as men reportWhose Father then (as men report,
CymbelineCym V.iv.77Then, Jupiter, thou king of gods,Then Iupiter, yu King of Gods,
CymbelineCym V.iv.117More sweet than our blest fields: his royal birdMore sweet then our blest Fields: his Royall Bird
CymbelineCym V.iv.135Nobler than that it covers. Let thy effectsNobler then that it couers. Let thy effects
CymbelineCym V.iv.143the old stock, and freshly grow, then shallthe old Stocke, and freshly grow, then shall
CymbelineCym V.iv.173I am merrier to die than thou art to live.I am merrier to dye, then thou art to liue.
CymbelineCym V.iv.180Your death has eyes in's head then: I haveYour death has eyes in's head then: I haue
CymbelineCym V.iv.197I'll be hanged then.Ile be hang'd then.
CymbelineCym V.iv.198Thou shalt be then freer than a gaoler; no bolts forThou shalt be then freer then a Gaoler; no bolts for
CymbelineCym V.v.27.2Who worse than a physicianWho worse then a Physitian
CymbelineCym V.v.113Than I to your highness, who being born your vassal,Then I to your Highnesse, who being born your vassaile
CymbelineCym V.v.152Than die ere I hear more: strive, man, and speak.Then dye ere I heare more: striue man, and speake.
CymbelineCym V.v.176And then a mind put in't, either our bragsAnd then a minde put in't, either our bragges
CymbelineCym V.v.183Pieces of gold, 'gainst this – which he then worePeeces of Gold, 'gainst this, which then he wore
CymbelineCym V.v.188Than I did truly find her, stakes this ring,Then I did truly finde her, stakes this Ring,
CymbelineCym V.v.217By being worse than they. I am Posthumus,By being worse then they. I am Posthumus,
CymbelineCym V.v.219That caused a lesser villain than myself,That caus'd a lesser villaine then my selfe,
CymbelineCym V.v.225Be villainy less than 'twas. O Innogen!Be villany lesse then 'twas. Oh Imogen!
CymbelineCym V.v.280Then in my pocket, which directed himThen in my pocket, which directed him
CymbelineCym V.v.302This man is better than the man he slew,This man is better then the man he slew,
CymbelineCym V.v.304More of thee merited than a band of ClotensMore of thee merited, then a Band of Clotens
CymbelineCym V.v.315.2Have at it then, by leave:Haue at it then, by leaue
CymbelineCym V.v.328Then spare not the old father. Mighty sir,Then spare not the old Father. Mighty Sir,
CymbelineCym V.v.345For that which I did then. Beaten for loyaltyFor that which I did then. Beaten for Loyaltie,
CymbelineCym V.v.355Unlike than this thou tell'st. I lost my children:Vnlike, then this thou tell'st. I lost my Children,
CymbelineCym V.v.411The purpose I then followed. That I was he,The purpose I then follow'd. That I was he,
CymbelineCym V.v.415As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you,As then your force did. Take that life, beseech you
CymbelineCym V.v.441jointed to the old stock, and freshly grow, thenioynted to the old Stocke, and freshly grow, then
HamletHam I.i.39The bell then beating one – The Bell then beating one.
HamletHam I.i.54Is not this something more than fantasy?Is not this something more then Fantasie?
HamletHam I.i.149And then it started, like a guilty thingAnd then it started, like a guilty thing
HamletHam I.i.162And then, they say, no spirit dares stir abroad;And then (they say) no Spirit can walke abroad,
HamletHam I.i.163The nights are wholesome; then no planets strike;The nights are wholsome, then no Planets strike,
HamletHam I.ii.37To business with the King, more than the scopeTo businesse with the King, more then the scope
HamletHam I.ii.49Than is the throne of Denmark to thy father.Then is the Throne of Denmarke to thy Father.
HamletHam I.ii.65A little more than kin, and less than kind!A little more then kin, and lesse then kinde.
HamletHam I.ii.111Than that which dearest father bears his sonThen that which deerest Father beares his Sonne,
HamletHam I.ii.153Than I to Hercules. Within a month,Then I to Hercules. Within a Moneth?
HamletHam I.ii.218But even then the morning cock crew loud,But euen then, the Morning Cocke crew lowd;
HamletHam I.ii.229Then saw you not his face?Then saw you not his face?
HamletHam I.ii.232A countenance more in sorrow than in anger.A countenance more in sorrow then in anger.
HamletHam I.ii.257Till then sit still, my soul. Foul deeds will rise,Till then sit still my soule; foule deeds will rise,
HamletHam I.iii.24Whereof he is the head. Then, if he says he loves you,Whereof he is the Head. Then if he sayes he loues you,
HamletHam I.iii.28Than the main voice of Denmark goes withal.Then the maine voyce of Denmarke goes withall.
HamletHam I.iii.29Then weigh what loss your honour may sustainThen weigh what losse your Honour may sustaine,
HamletHam I.iii.43Be wary then. Best safety lies in fear.Be wary then, best safety lies in feare;
HamletHam I.iii.80Thou canst not then be false to any man.Thou canst not then be false to any man.
HamletHam I.iii.118Giving more light than heat, extinct in bothGiuing more light then heate; extinct in both,
HamletHam I.iii.123Than a command to parle. For Lord Hamlet,Then a command to parley. For Lord Hamlet,
HamletHam I.iii.126Than may be given you. In few, Ophelia,Then may be giuen you. In few, Ophelia,
HamletHam I.iv.5Indeed? I heard it not. It then draws near the seasonIndeed I heard it not: then it drawes neere the season,
HamletHam I.iv.16More honoured in the breach than the observance.More honour'd in the breach, then the obseruance.
HamletHam I.iv.63It will not speak. Then I will follow it.It will not speake: then will I follow it.
HamletHam I.v.32And duller shouldst thou be than the fat weedAnd duller should'st thou be then the fat weede
HamletHam I.v.121How say you then? Would heart of man once think it?How say you then, would heart of man once think it?
HamletHam I.v.156Hic et ubique? Then we'll shift our ground.Hic & vbique? Then wee'l shift for grownd,
HamletHam I.v.167Than are dreamt of in your philosophy.Then are dream't of in our Philosophy.
HamletHam II.i.12Than your particular demands will touch it.Then your particular demands will touch it,
HamletHam II.i.49And then, sir, does 'a this – 'a does – WhatAnd then Sir does he this? / He does: what
HamletHam II.i.57Or then, or then, with such or such, and, as you say,Or then or then, with such and such; and as you say,
HamletHam II.i.88Then goes he to the length of all his arm,Then goes he to the length of all his arme;
HamletHam II.i.119More grief to hide than hate to utter love.More greefe to hide, then hate to vtter loue.
HamletHam II.ii.8More than his father's death, that thus hath put himMore then his Fathers death, that thus hath put him
HamletHam II.ii.29.1Than to entreaty.Then to Entreatie.
HamletHam II.ii.100Mad let us grant him then. And now remainsMad let vs grant him then: and now remaines
HamletHam II.ii.142This must not be.’ And then I prescripts gave her,This must not be: and then, I Precepts gaue her,
HamletHam II.ii.147Fell into a sadness, then into a fast,Fell into a Sadnesse, then into a Fast,
HamletHam II.ii.163Be you and I behind an arras then.Be you and I behinde an Arras then,
HamletHam II.ii.176Then I would you were so honest a man.Then I would you were so honest a man.
HamletHam II.ii.231Then you live about her waist, or in the middleThen you liue about her waste, or in the middle
HamletHam II.ii.238Then is doomsday near. But your news is notThen is Doomesday neere: But your newes is not
HamletHam II.ii.244Then is the world one.Then is the World one.
HamletHam II.ii.248Why, then 'tis none to you. For there is nothingWhy then 'tis none to you; for there is nothing
HamletHam II.ii.251Why, then your ambition makes it one.Why then your Ambition makes it one:
HamletHam II.ii.262Then are our beggars bodies, and our monarchsThen are our Beggers bodies; and our Monarchs
HamletHam II.ii.290Nay then, I have an eye of you. – If youNay then I haue an eye of you: if you
HamletHam II.ii.302appeareth nothing to me than a foul and pestilent congregationappeares no other thing to mee, then a foule and pestilent congregation
HamletHam II.ii.313Why did ye laugh then, when I said ‘ ManWhy did you laugh, when I said, Man
HamletHam II.ii.346longer than they can sing? Will they not say afterwards,longer then they can sing? Will they not say afterwards
HamletHam II.ii.366something in this more than natural, if philosophy couldsomething in this more then Naturall, if Philosophie could
HamletHam II.ii.370hands. Come then. Th' appurtenance of welcome ishands, come: The appurtenance of Welcome, is
HamletHam II.ii.374than yours. You are welcome. But my uncle-fatherthen yours. You are welcome: but my Vnckle Father,
HamletHam II.ii.387'twas then, indeed.'twas so indeed.
HamletHam II.ii.394Then came each actor on his ass – Then can each Actor on his Asse---
HamletHam II.ii.413What follows then, my lord?What followes then, my Lord?
HamletHam II.ii.416and then you know,and then you know,
HamletHam II.ii.425heaven than when I saw you last by the altitude of aHeauen then when I saw you last, by the altitude of a
HamletHam II.ii.472Th' unnerved father falls. Then senseless Ilium,Th'vnnerued Father fals. Then senselesse Illium,
HamletHam II.ii.489With less remorse than Pyrrhus' bleeding swordWith lesse remorse then Pyrrhus bleeding sword
HamletHam II.ii.510But if the gods themselves did see her then,But if the Gods themselues did see her then,
HamletHam II.ii.524than their ill report while you live.then their ill report while you liued.
HamletHam II.ii.602More relative than this. The play's the thingMore Relatiue then this: The Play's the thing,
HamletHam III.i.53Than is my deed to my most painted word.Then is my deede, to my most painted word.
HamletHam III.i.82Than fly to others that we know not of?Then flye to others that we know not of.
HamletHam III.i.99As made the things more rich. Their perfume lost,As made the things more rich, then perfume left:
HamletHam III.i.110than with honesty?then your Honestie?
HamletHam III.i.112transform honesty from what it is to a bawd than thetransforme Honestie from what it is, to a Bawd, then the
HamletHam III.i.125ambitious, with more offences at my beck than IAmbitious, with more offences at my becke, then I
HamletHam III.ii.38your clowns speak no more than is set down for them.your Clownes, speake no more then is set downe for them.
HamletHam III.ii.42then to be considered. That's villainous, and shows athen to be considered: that's Villanous, & shewes a
HamletHam III.ii.43most pitiful ambition in the fool that uses it. And thenmost pittifull Ambition in the Foole that vses it.
HamletHam III.ii.138So long? Nay then, let the devil wear black, forSo long? Nay then let the Diuel weare blacke, for
HamletHam III.ii.140ago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope a greatago, and not forgotten yet? Then there's hope, a great
HamletHam III.ii.142Lady, 'a must build churches then, or else shall 'a sufferbyrlady he must builde Churches then: or else shall he suffer
HamletHam III.ii.302Why then, belike he likes it not, perdy.Why then belike he likes it not perdie.
HamletHam III.ii.333Then thus she says: your behaviour hathThen thus she sayes: your behauior hath
HamletHam III.ii.378on than a pipe? Call me what instrument you will,on, then a Pipe? Call me what Instrument you will,
HamletHam III.ii.390Then I will come to my mother by and by.Then will I come to my Mother, by and by:
HamletHam III.iii.31'Tis meet that some more audience than a mother,'Tis meete that some more audience then a Mother,
HamletHam III.iii.44Were thicker than itself with brother's blood,Were thicker then it selfe with Brothers blood,
HamletHam III.iii.50Or pardoned being down? Then I'll look up.Or pardon'd being downe? Then Ile looke vp,
HamletHam III.iii.64To give in evidence. What then? What rests?To giue in euidence. What then? What rests?
HamletHam III.iii.84'Tis heavy with him. And am I then revenged,'Tis heauie with him: and am I then reueng'd,
HamletHam III.iii.93Then trip him, that his heels may kick at heaven,Then trip him, that his heeles may kicke at Heauen,
HamletHam III.iv.18Nay, then I'll set those to you that can speak.Nay, then Ile set those to you that can speake.
HamletHam III.iv.130My stern effects. Then what I have to doMy sterne effects: then what I haue to do,
HamletHam IV.iv.23Why, then the Polack never will defend it.
HamletHam IV.iv.56When honour's at the stake. How stand I then,
HamletHam IV.v.52Then up he rose and donned his clothes,Then vp he rose, & don'd his clothes,
HamletHam IV.v.103Than young Laertes, in a riotous head,Then young Laertes, in a Riotous head,
HamletHam IV.v.146.2Will you know them then?Will you know them then.
HamletHam IV.v.175This nothing's more than matter.This nothings more then matter.
HamletHam IV.vii.121And then this ‘ should ’ is like a spendthrift sigh,
HamletHam IV.vii.125.1More than in words?More then in words?
HamletHam IV.vii.183.2Alas, then she is drowned?Alas then, is she drown'd?
HamletHam V.i.28drown or hang themselves more than their even-Christian.drowne or hang themselues, more then their euen Christian.
HamletHam V.i.41What is he that builds stronger thanWhat is he that builds stronger then
HamletHam V.i.48built stronger than the church. Argal, the gallows maybuilt stronger then the Church: Argall, the Gallowes may
HamletHam V.i.50Who builds stronger than a mason, aWho builds stronger then a Mason, a
HamletHam V.i.107double ones too, than the length and breadth of a pairdouble ones too, then the length and breadth of a paire
HamletHam V.i.130What woman then?What woman then?
HamletHam V.i.166Why he more than another?Why he, more then another?
HamletHam V.i.295Till then in patience our proceeding be.Till then, in patience our proceeding be.
HamletHam V.ii.6Worse than the mutines in the bilboes. Rashly,Worse then the mutines in the Bilboes, rashly,
HamletHam V.ii.74And a man's life's no more than to say ‘one'.and a mans life's no more / Then to say one:
HamletHam V.ii.157it might be ‘ hangers ’ till then. But on! Six Barbaryit might be Hangers till then; but on sixe Barbary
HamletHam V.ii.230Then Hamlet does it not. Hamlet denies it.Then Hamlet does it not, Hamlet denies it:
HamletHam V.ii.231Who does it then? His madness. If't be so,Who does it then? His Madnesse? If't be so,
HamletHam V.ii.267Richer than that which four successive kingsRicher then that, which foure successiue Kings
HamletHam V.ii.316Then, venom, to thy work.Then venome to thy worke.
HamletHam V.ii.335I am more an antique Roman than a Dane.I am more an Antike Roman then a Dane:
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.i.30Therefore we meet not now. Then let me hearTherefore we meete not now. Then let me heare
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.i.47It seems then that the tidings of this broilIt seemes then, that the tidings of this broile,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.i.89Then would I have his Harry, and he mine.Then would I haue his Harry, and he mine:
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.i.106Than out of anger can be uttered.Then out of anger can be vttered.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.22Well, how then? Come, roundly, roundly.Well, how then? Come roundly, roundly.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.23Marry then, sweet wag, when thou art King letMarry then, sweet Wagge, when thou art King, let
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.94should speak truly, little better than one of the wicked.shold speake truly) little better then one of the wicked.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.119Then art thou damned for keeping thy word withThen art thou damn'd for keeping thy word with
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.140Well then, once in my days I'll be aWell then, once in my dayes Ile be a
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.144By the Lord, I'll be a traitor then, when thouIle be a Traitor then, when thou
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.169pleasure to fail – and then will they adventure uponpleasure to faile; and then will they aduenture vppon
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.183he fight longer than he sees reason, I'll forswear arms.he fight longer then he sees reason, Ile forswear Armes.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.208By how much better than my word I am,By how much better then my word I am,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.ii.213Than that which hath no foil to set it off.Then that which hath no foyle to set it off.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.6Mighty, and to be feared, than my condition,Mighty, and to be fear'd, then my condition
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.48I then, all smarting with my wounds being cold,I then, all-smarting, with my wounds being cold,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.70Whate'er Lord Harry Percy then had saidWhat euer Harry Percie then had said,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.75What then he said, so he unsay it now.What then he said, so he vnsay it now.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.84Hath lately married. Shall our coffers thenHath lately married. Shall our Coffers then,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.103Who then affrighted with their bloody looksWho then affrighted with their bloody lookes,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.111Then let not him be slandered with revolt.Then let him not be sland'red with Reuolt.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.140Of my wife's brother, then his cheek looked pale,Of my Wiues Brother, then his cheeke look'd pale,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.146And then it was, when the unhappy King – And then it was, when the vnhappy King
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.153But soft, I pray you, did King Richard thenBut soft I pray you; did King Richard then
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.156Nay then, I cannot blame his cousin KingNay then I cannot blame his Cousin King,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.196To rouse a lion than to start a hare!To rowze a Lyon, then to start a Hare.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.248This fawning greyhound then did proffer me!This fawning Grey-hound then did proffer me,
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.255Then once more to your Scottish prisoners.Then once more to your Scottish Prisoners.
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.274And then the power of Scotland, and of York,And then the power of Scotland, and of Yorke
Henry IV Part 11H4 I.iii.287Than I by letters shall direct your course.Then I by Letters shall direct your course
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.18a king Christian could be better bit than I have beenKing in Christendome, could be better bit, then I haue beene
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.21jordan, and then we leak in your chimney, and your Iourden, and then we leake in your Chimney: and your
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.52purses than giving direction doth from labouring. ThouPurses, then giuing direction, doth from labouring. Thou
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.78hold in, such as will strike sooner than speak, and speakholde in, such as will strike sooner then speake; and speake
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.79sooner than drink, and drink sooner than pray. And yet,sooner then drinke, and drinke sooner then pray: and yet
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.i.90beholding to the night than to fern-seed for yourbeholding to the Night, then to the Fernseed, for your
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.ii.60from your encounter, then they light on us.from your encounter, then they light on vs.
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.ii.96Come my masters, let us share, and then toCome my Masters, let vs share, and then to
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iii.4He could be contented! Why is he not then? In respectHe could be contented: Why is he not then? in respect
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iii.6loves his own barn better than he loves our house. Letloues his owne Barne better then he loues our house. Let
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iii.100Well, do not then, for since you love me notWell, do not then. For since you loue me not,
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iii.111Than Harry Percy's wife. Constant you are,Then Harry Percies wife. Constant you are,
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.16they cry ‘ Hem!’ and bid you ‘ Play it off!’ To conclude,then they cry hem, and bid you play it off. To conclude,
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.24life than ‘ Eight shillings and sixpence,’ and ‘ You arelife, then Eight shillings and six pence, and, You are
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.71Why then your brown bastard is your onlyWhy then your browne Bastard is your onely
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.82Let them alone awhile, and then open theLet them alone awhile, and then open the
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.98words than a parrot, and yet the son of a woman! Hiswords then a Parret, and yet the sonne of a Woman. His
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.118tale of the sun's? If thou didst, then behold thatTale of the Sunne? If thou didst, then behold that
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.122a coward is worse than a cup of sack with lime in it. Aa Coward is worse then a Cup of Sack with lime. A
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.125the face of the earth, then am I a shotten herring. Therethe face of the earth, then am I a shotten Herring: there
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.166 speak more or less than truth, they are villains and thespeake more or lesse then truth, they are villaines, and the
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.177And unbound the rest, and then come in theAnd vnbound the rest, and then come in the
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.183Jack, then am I no two-legg'd creature.Iack, then am I no two-legg'd Creature.
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.244Well, breathe awhile, and then to it again,Well, breath a-while, and then to't againe:
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.250plain tale shall put you down. Then did we two set onplaine Tale shall put you downe. Then did we two, set on
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.257then say it was in fight! What trick, what device, whatthen say it was in fight. What trick? what deuice? what
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.303to make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garmentsto make them bleed, and then to beslubber our garments
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.344Why, what a rascal art thou then, to praiseWhy, what a Rascall art thou then, to prayse
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.354Why then, it is like if there come a hot June,Then 'tis like, if there come a hot Sunne,
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.398of thy nether lip, that doth warrant me. If then thou beof thy nether Lippe, that doth warrant me. If then thou be
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.417virtue in his looks. If then the tree may be known by theVertue in his Lookes. If then the Tree may be knowne by the
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.418fruit, as the fruit by the tree, then peremptorily I speak it,Fruit, as the Fruit by the Tree, then peremptorily I speake it,
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.453But to say I know more harm in him than in myself were toBut to say, I know more harme in him then in my selfe, were to
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.454say more than I know. That he is old, the more the pity, hissay more then I know. That hee is olde (the more the pittie) his
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.458sin, then many an old host that I know is damned. If to besinne, then many an olde Hoste that I know, is damn'd: if to be
Henry IV Part 11H4 II.iv.459fat be to be hated, then Pharaoh's lean kine are to be loved.fat, be to be hated, then Pharaohs leane Kine are to be loued.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.22O, then the earth shook to see the heavens on fire,Oh, then the Earth shooke To see the Heauens on fire,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.110And then he runs straight and even.And then he runnes straight and euen.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.115Let me not understand you then, speak it in Welsh.Let me not vnderstand you then, speake it in Welsh.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.124Than one of these same metre ballad-mongers.Then one of these same Meeter Ballad-mongers:
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.155Worse than a smoky house. I had rather liveWorse then a smoakie House. I had rather liue
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.157Than feed on cates and have him talk to meThen feede on Cates, and haue him talke to me,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.205Nay, if you melt, then will she run mad.Nay, if thou melt, then will she runne madde.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.227Then should you be nothing but musical,Then would you be nothing but Musicall,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.233Then be still.Then be still.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.246As if thou never walkest further than Finsbury.As if thou neuer walk'st further then Finsbury.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.i.259.1And then to horse immediately.And then to Horse immediately.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.50And then I stole all courtesy from heaven,And then I stole all Courtesie from Heauen,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.73More than a little is by much too much.More then a little, is by much too much.
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.94As thou art to this hour was Richard thenAs thou art to this houre, was Richard then,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.96And even as I was then is Percy now.And euen as I was then, is Percy now:
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.99Than thou the shadow of succession.Then thou, the shadow of Succession;
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.ii.103And being no more in debt to years than thouAnd being no more in debt to yeeres, then thou,
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.iii.6of heart shortly, and then I shall have no strength toof heart shortly, and then I shall haue no strength to
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.iii.111There's no more faith in thee than in a stewedThere's no more faith in thee then a stu'de
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.iii.112prune, nor no more truth in thee than in a drawn fox – Prune; nor no more truth in thee, then in a drawne Fox:
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.iii.165have more flesh than another man, and therefore morehaue more flesh then another man, and therefore more
Henry IV Part 11H4 III.iii.166frailty. You confess then, you picked my pocket?frailty. You confesse then you pickt my Pocket?
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.i.8In my heart's love hath no man than yourself.In my hearts loue, hath no man then your Selfe.
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.i.27His health was never better worth than now.His health was neuer better worth then now.
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.i.45Seems more than we shall find it. Were it goodSeemes more then we shall finde it. / Were it good,
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.i.79Than if the Earl were here. For men must thinkThen if the Earle were here: for men must thinke,
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.i.111No more, no more! Worse than the sun in March,No more, no more, / Worse then the Sunne in March:
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.ii.19report of a caliver worse than a struck fowl or a hurt wildreport of a Caliuer, worse then a struck-Foole, or a hurt wilde-
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.ii.21with hearts in their bellies no bigger than pins' heads,with Hearts in their Bellyes no bigger then Pinnes heads,
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.ii.30dishonourable-ragged than an old fazed ancient. Anddis-honorable ragged, then an old-fac'd Ancient; and
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.ii.52Faith, Sir John, 'tis more than time that'Faith, Sir Iohn, 'tis more then time that
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.iii.2.1You give him then advantage.You giue him then aduantage.
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.iii.75Steps me a little higher than his vowStep me a little higher then his Vow
Henry IV Part 11H4 IV.iii.89.2Then to the point.Then to the point.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.7Then with the losers let it sympathize,Then with the losers let it sympathize,
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.27You have not sought it? How comes it, then?You haue not sought it: how comes it then?
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.44Nor claim no further than your new-fallen right,Nor claime no further, then your new-falne right,
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.131come on, how then? Can honour set to a leg? No. Orcome on? How then? Can Honour set too a legge? No: or
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.133Honour hath no skill in surgery, then? No. What isHonour hath no skill in Surgerie, then? No. What is
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.i.137hear it? No. 'Tis insensible, then? Yea, to the dead.heare it? No. Is it insensible then? yea, to the dead.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.ii.3.2Then are we all undone.Then we are all vndone.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.ii.58Making you ever better than his praiseMaking you euer better then his praise,
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iii.2.1Then enter Douglas, and Sir Walter Blunt, disguisedThen enter Dowglas, and Sir Walter Blunt.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iii.3.2Know then my name is Douglas,Know then my name is Dowglas,
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iii.14.2Then enter Hotspurthen enters Hotspur.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iii.35more weight than mine own bowels. I have led mymore weight then mine owne Bowelles. I haue led my
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.21With lustier maintenance than I did look forWith lustier maintenance then I did looke for
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.60.2Why, then I seeWhy then I see
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.78Than those proud titles thou hast won of me.Then those proud Titles thou hast wonne of me,
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.79They wound my thoughts worse than thy sword my flesh.They wound my thoghts worse, then the sword my flesh:
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.109Till then in blood by noble Percy lie.Till then, in blood, by Noble Percie lye.
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.iv.137if I be not Jack Falstaff, then am I a Jack. There isif I be not Iacke Falstaffe, then am I a Iacke: There is
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.v.25Then, brother John of Lancaster, to youThen Brother Iohn of Lancaster, / To you
Henry IV Part 11H4 V.v.34Then this remains, that we divide our power.Then this remaines: that we diuide our Power.
Henry IV Part 22H4 induction.39Than they have learnt of me. From Rumour's tonguesThen they haue learn'd of Me. From Rumours Tongues,
Henry IV Part 22H4 induction.40They bring smooth comforts false, worse than true wrongs.They bring smooth-Comforts-false, worse then True-wrongs.
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.32More than he haply may retail from me.More then he (haply) may retaile from me.
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.56.1Give then such instances of loss?Giue then such instances of Losse?
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.69Is apter than thy tongue to tell thy errand.Is apter then thy Tongue, to tell thy Errand.
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.124Than did our soldiers, aiming at their safety,Then did our Soldiers (ayming at their safety)
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.125Fly from the field. Then was the noble WorcesterFly from the field. Then was that Noble Worcester
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.171More likely to fall in than to get o'er.More likely to fall in, then to get o're:
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.177The stiff-borne action. What hath then befallen,The stiffe-borne Action: What hath then befalne?
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.179More than that being which was like to be?More then that Being, which was like to be?
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.i.187'Tis more than time. And, my most noble lord,'Tis more then time: And (my most Noble Lord)
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.5more diseases than he knew for.more diseases then he knew for.
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.8to invent anything that intends to laughter more than Ito inuent any thing that tends to laughter, more then I
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.13for any other reason than to set me off, why then I havefor any other reason, then to set mee off, why then I haue
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.15fitter to be worn in my cap than to wait at my heels. Ifitter to be worne in my cap, then to wait at my heeles. I
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.21my hand than he shall get one off his cheek; and yet hemy hand, then he shall get one on his cheeke: yet he
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.31than Bardolph. He would not take his bond andthen Bardolfe: he wold not take his Bond &
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.36and then stand upon security! The whoreson smoothy-and then stand vpon Security? The horson smooth-
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.39them in honest taking up, then they must stand uponthem in honest Taking-vp, then they must stand vpon
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.76to beg than to be on the worst side, were it worse thanto begge, then to be on the worst side, were it worse then
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.82I pray you, sir, then set your knighthood andI pray you (Sir) then set your Knighthood and
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.84lie in your throat if you say I am any other than anlye in your throat, if you say I am any other then an
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.135As I was then advised by my learned counselAs I was then aduised by my learned Councel,
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.ii.231man can no more separate age and covetousness than 'aman can no more separate Age and Couetousnesse, then he
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.iii.15The question then, Lord Hastings, standeth thus – The question then (Lord Hastings) standeth thus
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.iii.30Much smaller than the smallest of his thoughts,Much smaller, then the smallest of his Thoughts,
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.iii.42We first survey the plot, then draw the model,We first suruey the Plot, then draw the Modell,
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.iii.44Then must we rate the cost of the erection,Then must we rate the cost of the Erection,
Henry IV Part 22H4 I.iii.46What do we then but draw anew the modelWhat do we then, but draw a-new the Modell
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.i.71It is more than for some, my lord, it is for all IIt is more then for some (my Lord) it is for all: all I
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.i.89didst swear to me then, as I was washing thy wound,didst sweare to me then (as I was washing thy wound)
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.i.92wife come in then and call me gossip Quickly? – comingwife come in then, and cal me gossip Quickly? comming
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.i.110throng of words that come with such more thanthrong of wordes, that come with such (more then
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.ii.9Belike then my appetite was not princelyBelike then, my Appetite was not Princely
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.ii.18But that the tennis-court keeper knows better than I,But that the Tennis-Court-keeper knowes better then I,
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.ii.34breeding than thine.breeding then thine.
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.ii.55better than thine. Every man would think me anbetter then thine: euery man would thinke me an
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iii.11When you were more endeared to it than now,When you were more endeer'd to it, then now,
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iii.15Who then persuaded you to stay at home?Who then perswaded you to stay at home?
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iii.41With others than with him! Let them alone.With others, then with him. Let them alone:
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iii.54Then join you with them like a rib of steel,Then ioyne you with them, like a Ribbe of Steele,
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.10Why then, cover, and set them down, and seeWhy then couer, and set them downe: and see
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.19By the mass, here will be old utis. It will be anThen here will be old Vtis: it will be an
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.29Better than I was – hem!Better then I was: Hem.
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.84to me – 'twas no longer ago than Wednesday last, i'goodto me, it was no longer agoe then Wednesday last:
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.86our minister was by then – ‘ Neighbour Quickly,’ saysour Minister, was by then: Neighbour Quickly (sayes
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.115drink no more than will do me good, for no man'sdrinke no more then will doe me good, for no mans
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.117Then to you, Mistress Dorothy! I will chargeThen to you (Mistris Dorothie) I will charge
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.174Then feed and be fat, my fair Calipolis!Then feed, and be fat (my faire Calipolis.)
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.192Then death rock me asleep, abridge my doleful days!then Death rocke me asleepe, abridge my dolefull dayes:
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.193Why then, let grievous, ghastly, gaping woundswhy then let grieuous, gastly, gaping Wounds,
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.215Agamemnon, and ten times better than the NineAgamemnon, and tenne times better then the nine
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.237in him than is in a mallet.in him, then is in a Mallet.
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.238Why does the Prince love him so, then?Why doth the Prince loue him so then?
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.266I love thee better than I love e'er a scurvy youngI loue thee better, then I loue ere a scuruie young
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.282A better than thou – I am a gentleman; thouA better then thou: I am a Gentleman, thou
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.306I shall drive you then to confess theI shall driue you then to confesse the
Henry IV Part 22H4 II.iv.307wilful abuse, and then I know how to handle you.wilfull abuse, and then I know how to handle you.
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.12Than in the perfumed chambers of the great,Then in the perfum'd Chambers of the Great?
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.30Deny it to a king? Then happy low, lie down!Deny it to a King? Then happy Lowe, lye downe,
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.35Why then, good morrow to you all, my lords.Why then good-morrow to you all (my Lords:)
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.38Then you perceive the body of our kingdomThen you perceiue the Body of our Kingdome,
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.64Then checked and rated by Northumberland,(Then check'd, and rated by Northumberland)
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.68Though then, God knows, I had no such intent,(Though then, Heauen knowes, I had no such intent,
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.85That great Northumberland, then false to him,That great Northumberland, then false to him,
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.88.2Are these things then necessities?Are these things then Necessities?
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.i.89Then let us meet them like necessities,Then let vs meete them like Necessities;
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.12'A must then to the Inns o' Court shortly. IHee must then to the Innes of Court shortly: I
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.15You were called ‘ lusty Shallow ’ then, cousin.You were call'd lustie Shallow then (Cousin.)
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.23the best of them all at commandment. Then was Jackthe best of them all at commandement. Then was Iacke
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.66than with a wife.then with a Wife.
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.115go out than I.goe out, then I.
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.184Here is two more called than your number.There is two more called then your number:
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.200was then a bona-roba. Doth she hold her own well? was then a Bona-Roba. Doth she hold her owne well.
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.242Marry, then, Mouldy, Bullcalf, Feeble, andMarry then, Mouldie, Bull-calfe, Feeble, and
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.256come off and on swifter than he that gibbets on thecome off, and on, swifter then hee that gibbets on the
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.271Clement's Inn – I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthur'sClements Inne, I was then Sir Dagonet in Arthurs
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.297hearer than the Turk's tribute. I do remember him athearer, then the Turkes Tribute. I doe remember him at
Henry IV Part 22H4 III.ii.311saw him but once in the tilt-yard, and then he burst hissaw him but once in the Tilt-yard, and then he burst his
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.30.2Then, my lord,Then (my Lord)
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.69And find our griefs heavier than our offences.And finde our Griefes heauier then our Offences.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.113The King that loved him, as the state stood then,The King that lou'd him, as the State stood then,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.115And then that Henry Bolingbroke and he,And then, that Henry Bullingbrooke and hee
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.121Then, then, when there was nothing could have stayedThen, then, when there was nothing could haue stay'd
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.125Then threw he down himself and all their livesThen threw hee downe himselfe, and all their Liues,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.129The Earl of Hereford was reputed thenThe Earle of Hereford was reputed then
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.131Who knows on whom fortune would then have smiled?Who knowes, on whom Fortune would then haue smil'd?
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.137And blessed, and graced, indeed more than the King.And bless'd, and grac'd, and did more then the King.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.152Our battle is more full of names than yours,Our Battaile is more full of Names then yours,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.155Then reason will our hearts should be as good.Then Reason will, our hearts should be as good.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.156Say you not then our offer is compelled.Say you not then, our Offer is compell'd.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.166Then take, my lord of Westmorland, this schedule,Then take (my Lord of Westmerland) this Schedule,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.i.225Your grace of York, in God's name then, set forward.Your Grace of Yorke, in heauen's name then forward.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.ii.8Than now to see you here an iron man,Then now to see you heere an Iron man
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.ii.90For then both parties nobly are subdued,For then both parties nobly are subdu'd,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.5Well then, Colevile is your name, a knight isWell then, Colleuile is your Name, a Knight is
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.27When everything is ended, then you come.When euery thing is ended, then you come.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.42It was more of his courtesy than yourIt was more of his Courtesie, then your
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.56Let it shine, then.Let it shine then.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.66You should have won them dearer than you have.You should haue wonne them dearer then you haue.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.84Shall better speak of you than you deserve.Shall better speake of you, then you deserue.
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.85I would you had the wit; 'twere better thanI would you had but the wit: 'twere better then
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.92male green-sickness; and then when they marry theyMale Greene-sicknesse: and then, when they marry, they
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iii.108then the vital commoners, and inland petty spirits,then the Vitall Commoners, and in-land pettie Spirits,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.iv.23Than all thy brothers; cherish it, my boy,Then all thy Brothers: cherish it (my Boy)
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.v.111Then get thee gone, and dig my grave thyself,Then get thee gone, and digge my graue thy selfe,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.v.146Than as your honour and as your renown,Then as your Honour, and as your Renowne,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.v.202Yet though thou standest more sure than I could do,Yet, though thou stand'st more sure, then I could do,
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.v.221Then plain and right must my possession be,Then plaine and right must my possession be;
Henry IV Part 22H4 IV.v.222Which I with more than with a common painWhich I, with more, then with a Common paine,
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.i.27i'th' court is better than a penny in purse. Use his meni'th Court, is better then a penny in purse. Vse his men
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.i.29No worse than they are backbitten, sir, for theyNo worse then they are bitten, sir: For they
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.13Than I have drawn it in my fantasy.Then I haue drawne it in my fantasie.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.17How many nobles then should hold their placesHow many Nobles then, should hold their places,
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.53And wear it in my heart. Why then, be sad;And weare it in my heart. Why then be sad,
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.55Than a joint burden laid upon us all.Then a ioynt burthen, laid vpon vs all.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.73I then did use the person of your father;I then did vse the Person of your Father:
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.74The image of his power lay then in meThe Image of his power, lay then in me,
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.ii.96And then imagine me taking your part,And then imagine me, taking your part,
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.iii.4cousin Silence – and then to bed.Cosin Silence, and then to bed.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.iii.78Is't so? Why then, say an old man can doIs't so? Why then say an old man can do
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.iii.106Then, Pistol, lay thy head in Furies' lap.Then Pistoll lay thy head in Furies lappe.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.iii.108Why then, lament therefore.Why then Lament therefore.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.v.57For thee thrice wider than for other men.For thee, thrice wider then for other men.
Henry IV Part 22H4 V.v.66Till then I banish thee, on pain of death,Till then, I banish thee, on paine of death,
Henry IV Part 22H4 epilogue.1First, my fear; then, my curtsy; last, my speech.FIRST, my Feare: then, my Curtsie: last, my Speech.
Henry IV Part 22H4 epilogue.22me. If the gentlemen will not, then the gentlemen dome, if the Gentlemen will not, then the Gentlemen do
Henry VH5 I.chorus.5Then should the warlike Harry, like himself,Then should the Warlike Harry, like himselfe,
Henry VH5 I.i.74Than cherishing th' exhibiters against us;Then cherishing th'exhibiters against vs:
Henry VH5 I.i.80Than ever at one time the clergy yetThen euer at one time the Clergie yet
Henry VH5 I.i.95Then go we in to know his embassy;Then goe we in, to know his Embassie:
Henry VH5 I.ii.33Then hear me, gracious sovereign, and you peers,Then heare me gracious Soueraign, & you Peers,
Henry VH5 I.ii.50Established then this law: to wit, no femaleEstablisht then this Law; to wit, No Female
Henry VH5 I.ii.54Then doth it well appear the Salic lawThen doth it well appeare, the Salike Law
Henry VH5 I.ii.94Than amply to imbare their crooked titlesThen amply to imbarre their crooked Titles,
Henry VH5 I.ii.155She hath been then more feared than harmed, my liege;She hath bin thẽ more fear'd thẽ harm'd, my Liege:
Henry VH5 I.ii.168Then with Scotland first begin.’then with Scotland first begin.
Henry VH5 I.ii.173To tame and havoc more than she can eat.To tame and hauocke more then she can eate.
Henry VH5 I.ii.174It follows then the cat must stay at home;It followes then, the Cat must stay at home,
Henry VH5 I.ii.246.2Thus then, in few:Thus than in few:
Henry VH5 I.ii.297When thousands weep more than did laugh at it.When thousands weepe more then did laugh at it.
Henry VH5 II.chorus.41But till the King come forth, and not till then,But till the King come forth, and not till then,
Henry VH5 II.i.99friends: an thou wilt not, why then be enemies with mefrends, and thou wilt not, why then be enemies with me
Henry VH5 II.i.111Well then, that's the humour of't.Well, then that the humor of't.
Henry VH5 II.ii.26Than is your majesty. There's not, I think, a subjectThen is your Maiesty; there's not I thinke a subiect
Henry VH5 II.ii.34Sooner than quittance of desert and meritSooner then quittance of desert and merit,
Henry VH5 II.ii.66Then, Richard Earl of Cambridge, there is yours;Then Richard Earle of Cambridge, there is yours:
Henry VH5 II.ii.93Than Cambridge is, hath likewise sworn. But O,Then Cambridge is, hath likewise sworne. But O,
Henry VH5 II.ii.152And I repent my fault more than my death,And I repent my fault more then my death,
Henry VH5 II.ii.163Than I do at this hour joy o'er myself,Then I do at this houre ioy ore my selfe,
Henry VH5 II.ii.189Then forth, dear countrymen! Let us deliverThen forth, deare Countreymen: Let vs deliuer
Henry VH5 II.iii.24then I felt to his knees, and so up'ard and up'ard, andthen I felt to his knees, and so vp-peer'd, and vpward, and
Henry VH5 II.iii.35then he was rheumatic, and talked of the Whore ofthen hee was rumatique, and talk'd of the Whore of
Henry VH5 II.iv.2And more than carefully it us concernsAnd more then carefully it vs concernes,
Henry VH5 II.iv.11It fits us then to be as providentIt fits vs then to be as prouident,
Henry VH5 II.iv.24No, with no more than if we heard that EnglandNo, with no more, then if we heard that England
Henry VH5 II.iv.44The enemy more mighty than he seems.The Enemie more mightie then he seemes,
Henry VH5 II.iv.93Edward the Third, he bids you then resignEdward the third; he bids you then resigne
Henry VH5 III.chorus.3Than that of thought. Suppose that you have seenthen that of Thought. / Suppose, that you haue seene
Henry VH5 III.i.6Then imitate the action of the tiger;Then imitate the action of the Tyger:
Henry VH5 III.i.9Then lend the eye a terrible aspect;Then lend the Eye a terrible aspect:
Henry VH5 III.ii.71of the Roman disciplines, than is a puppy-dog.of the Roman disciplines, then is a Puppy-dog.
Henry VH5 III.ii.122than is meant, Captain Macmorris, peradventure I shallthen is meant, Captaine Mackmorrice, peraduenture I shall
Henry VH5 III.iii.15What is it then to me, if impious war,What is it then to me, if impious Warre,
Henry VH5 III.v.39More sharper than your swords, hie to the field!More sharper then your Swords, high to the field:
Henry VH5 III.vi.51Why then, rejoice therefore!Why then reioyce therefore.
Henry VH5 III.vi.66Why, 'tis a gull, a fool, a rogue, that now and thenWhy 'tis a Gull, a Foole, a Rogue, that now and then
Henry VH5 III.vi.112Well then, I know thee: what shall I knowWell then, I know thee: what shall I know
Henry VH5 III.vi.118Advantage is a better soldier than rashness. Tell himAduantage is a better Souldier then rashnesse. Tell him,
Henry VH5 III.vi.145Almost no better than so many French;Almost no better then so many French;
Henry VH5 III.vii.17of his hoof is more musical than the pipe of Hermes.of his hoofe, is more Musicall then the Pipe of Hermes
Henry VH5 III.vii.41Then did they imitate that which I composedThen did they imitate that which I compos'd
Henry VH5 III.vii.50O, then belike she was old and gentle, and youO then belike she was old and gentle, and you
Henry VH5 III.vii.54Be warned by me, then: they that ride so, andBe warn'd by me then: they that ride so, and
Henry VH5 III.vii.102than you.then you.
Henry VH5 III.vii.145leaving their wits with their wives; and then, give themleauing their Wits with their Wiues: and then giue them
Henry VH5 III.vii.149Then shall we find tomorrow they have onlyThen shall we finde to morrow, they haue only
Henry VH5 IV.i.15Were better than a churlish turf of France.Were better then a churlish turfe of France.
Henry VH5 IV.i.32And then I would no other company.And then I would no other company.
Henry VH5 IV.i.43Then you are a better than the King.Then you are a better then the King.
Henry VH5 IV.i.60The figo for thee then!The Figo for thee then.
Henry VH5 IV.i.104affections are higher mounted than ours, yet when theyaffections are higher mounted then ours, yet when they
Henry VH5 IV.i.117Then I would he were here alone; so should he beThen I would he were here alone; so should he be
Henry VH5 IV.i.125That's more than we know.That's more then we know.
Henry VH5 IV.i.126Ay, or more than we should seek after; for we knowI, or more then wee should seeke after; for wee know
Henry VH5 IV.i.168and where they would be safe, they perish. Then ifand where they would bee safe, they perish. Then if
Henry VH5 IV.i.170damnation than he was before guilty of those impietiesdamnation, then hee was before guiltie of those Impieties,
Henry VH5 IV.i.192You pay him then! That's a perilous shot outYou pay him then: that's a perillous shot out
Henry VH5 IV.i.204it in my bonnet: then, if ever thou dar'st acknowledge it,it in my Bonnet: Then if euer thou dar'st acknowledge it,
Henry VH5 IV.i.235Of mortal griefs than do thy worshippers?Of mortall griefes, then doe thy worshippers.
Henry VH5 IV.i.242Than they in fearing.Then they in fearing.
Henry VH5 IV.i.290Than from it issued forced drops of blood.Then from it issued forced drops of blood.
Henry VH5 IV.ii.11How shall we then behold their natural tears?How shall we then behold their naturall teares?
Henry VH5 IV.ii.32And all is done. Then let the trumpets soundAnd all is done: then let the Trumpets sound
Henry VH5 IV.iii.8Then joyfully, my noble Lord of Bedford,Then ioyfully, my Noble Lord of Bedford,
Henry VH5 IV.iii.47Then will he strip his sleeve, and show his scars,Then will he strip his sleeue, and shew his skarres:
Henry VH5 IV.iii.51What feats he did that day. Then shall our names,What feats he did that day. Then shall our Names,
Henry VH5 IV.iii.77Which likes me better than to wish us one.Which likes me better, then to wish vs one.
Henry VH5 IV.iii.91Bid them achieve me, and then sell my bones.Bid them atchieue me, and then sell my bones.
Henry VH5 IV.iii.104Mark then abounding valour in our English,Marke then abounding valour in our English:
Henry VH5 IV.iii.120As, if God please, they shall – my ransom thenAs if God please, they shall; my Ransome then
Henry VH5 IV.iv.69more valour than this roaring devil i'th' old play, thatmore valour, then this roaring diuell i'th olde play, that
Henry VH5 IV.v.15Whilst by a slave, no gentler than my dog,Whilst a base slaue, no gentler then my dogge,
Henry VH5 IV.vi.17Tarry, sweet soul, for mine, then fly abreast,Tarry (sweet soule) for mine, then flye a-brest:
Henry VH5 IV.vi.37Then every soldier kill his prisoners!Then euery souldiour kill his Prisoners,
Henry VH5 IV.vii.65His eyes are humbler than they used to be.His eyes are humbler then they vs'd to be.
Henry VH5 IV.vii.71To book our dead, and then to bury them,To booke our dead, and then to bury them,
Henry VH5 IV.vii.88Then call we this the field of Agincourt,Then call we this the field of Agincourt,
Henry VH5 IV.vii.140Then keep thy vow, sirrah, when thouThen keepe thy vow sirrah, when thou
Henry VH5 IV.viii.4more good toward you, peradventure, than is in yourmore good toward you peraduenture, then is in your
Henry VH5 IV.viii.124And then to Calais, and to England then,And then to Callice, and to England then,
Henry VH5 V.chorus.44Then brook abridgement, and your eyes advance,Then brooke abridgement, and your eyes aduance,
Henry VH5 V.i.7know to be no petter than a fellow, look you now, of noknow to be no petter then a fellow, looke you now, of no
Henry VH5 V.i.12him once again, and then I will tell him a little piece ofhim once againe, and then I will tell him a little piece of
Henry VH5 V.ii.29Since, then, my office hath so far prevailedSince then my Office hath so farre preuayl'd,
Henry VH5 V.ii.75.2Well then, the peaceWell then: the Peace
Henry VH5 V.ii.127‘ I love you:’ then if you urge me farther than to say,I loue you; then if you vrge me farther, then to say,
Henry VH5 V.ii.166say'st thou then to my love? Speak, my fair, and fairly,say'st thou then to my Loue? speake my faire, and fairely,
Henry VH5 V.ii.174and, Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours, thenand Kate, when France is mine, and I am yours; then
Henry VH5 V.ii.181le possession de moi, – let me see, what then? Saint Denisle possession de moy. (Let mee see, what then? Saint Dennis
Henry VH5 V.ii.254Then I will kiss your lips, Kate.Then I will kisse your Lippes, Kate.
Henry VH5 V.ii.273more eloquence in a sugar touch of them than in themore eloquence in a Sugar touch of them, then in the
Henry VH5 V.ii.275persuade Harry of England than a general petition ofperswade Harry of England, then a generall Petition of
Henry VH5 V.ii.291her, then, being a maid yet rosed over with the virginher then, being a Maid, yet ros'd ouer with the Virgin
Henry VH5 V.ii.297They are then excused, my lord, when theyThey are then excus'd, my Lord, when they
Henry VH5 V.ii.299Then, good my lord, teach your cousin toThen good my Lord, teach your Cousin to
Henry VH5 V.ii.304blind, though they have their eyes, and then theyblinde, though they haue their eyes, and then they
Henry VH5 V.ii.326His daughter first, and then, in sequel, all,His Daughter first; and in sequele, all,
Henry VH5 V.ii.337I pray you then, in love and dear alliance,I pray you then, in loue and deare allyance,
Henry VH5 V.ii.365Then shall I swear to Kate, and you to me,Then shall I sweare to Kate, and you to me,
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.11His arms spread wider than a dragon's wings;His Armes spred wider then a Dragons Wings:
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.14Than midday sun fierce bent against their faces.Then mid-day Sunne, fierce bent against their faces.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.40More than God or religious churchmen may.More then God or Religious Church-men may.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.56Than Julius Caesar or bright – Then Iulius Casar, or bright----
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.120More than three hours the fight continued,More then three houres the fight continued:
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.141Is Talbot slain? Then I will slay myself,Is Talbot slaine then? I will slay my selfe,
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.i.169And then I will proclaim young Henry king.And then I will proclayme young Henry King.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.ii.40The walls they'll tear down than forsake the siege.The Walls they'le teare downe, then forsake the Siege.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.ii.102Then come, a God's name; I fear no woman.Then come a Gods name, I feare no woman.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.ii.116Then will I think upon a recompense.Then will I thinke vpon a recompence.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.ii.122He may mean more than we poor men do know;He may meane more then we poor men do know,
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.ii.141Thou with an eagle art inspired then.Thou with an Eagle art inspired then.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iii.10We do no otherwise than we are willed.We doe no otherwise then wee are will'd.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iii.85This cardinal's more haughty than the devil.This Cardinall's more haughtie then the Deuill.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iii.89See the coast cleared, and then we will depart.See the Coast clear'd, and then we will depart.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iv.33Rather than I would be so pilled esteemed.Rather then I would be so pil'd esteem'd:
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iv.44Then broke I from the officers that led me,Then broke I from the Officers that led me,
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.iv.111And then we'll try what these dastard Frenchmen dare.And then wee'le try what these dastard Frenchmen dare.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.v.1.2the Dauphin and driveth him. Then enter Joan lathe Dolphin, and driueth him: Then enter Ioane de
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.v.1.4Then enter TalbotThen enter Talbot.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.v.15.1A short alarum. Then she enters the town withA short Alarum: then enter the Towne with
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.vi.22Than Rhodope's of Memphis ever was.Then Rhodophe's or Memphis euer was.
Henry VI Part 11H6 I.vi.25Than the rich-jewelled coffer of Darius,Then the rich-iewel'd Coffer of Darius,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.i.13Embrace we then this opportunity,Embrace we then this opportunitie,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.i.45More venturous or desperate than this.More venturous, or desperate then this.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.i.71Then how or which way should they first break in?Then how, or which way, should they first breake in?
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.ii.44Is it even so? Nay, then I see our warsIs it euen so? Nay, then I see our Warres
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.ii.48Ne'er trust me then; for when a world of menNe're trust me then: for when a World of men
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.ii.54No, truly, 'tis more than manners will;No,truly, 'tis more then manners will:
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.ii.57Well, then, alone, since there's no remedy,Well then, alone (since there's no remedie)
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iii.32If thou be he, then art thou prisoner.If thou be he, then art thou Prisoner.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iii.48Then have I substance too.Then haue I substance too.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iii.67I find thou art no less than fame hath bruited,I finde thou art no lesse then Fame hath bruited,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iii.68And more than may be gathered by thy shape.And more then may be gathered by thy shape.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.5Then say at once if I maintained the truth;Then say at once, if I maintain'd the Truth:
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.10Judge you, my Lord of Warwick, then between us.Iudge you, my Lord of Warwicke, then betweene vs.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.18Good faith, I am no wiser than a daw.Good faith I am no wiser then a Daw.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.46Then, for the truth and plainness of the case,Then for the truth, and plainnesse of the Case,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.98And that I'll prove on better men than Somerset,And that Ile proue on better men then Somerset,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.iv.119And if thou be not then created York,And if thou be not then created Yorke,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.21Enough; my soul shall then be satisfied.Enough: my Soule shall then be satisfied.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.26And even since then hath Richard been obscured,And euen since then, hath Richard beene obscur'd,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.84Thy father, Earl of Cambridge then, derivedThy Father, Earle of Cambridge, then deriu'd
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.100Was nothing less than bloody tyranny.Was nothing lesse then bloody Tyranny.
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.109Thou dost then wrong me, as that slaughterer dothThou do'st then wrong me, as yt slaughterer doth,
Henry VI Part 11H6 II.v.121Will see his burial better than his life.Will see his Buryall better then his Life.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.i.19Lascivious, wanton, more than well beseemsLasciuious, wanton, more then well beseemes
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.i.34More than I do, except I be provoked?More then I doe? except I be prouok'd.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.i.1.52Roam thither then.Roame thither then.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.i.118Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood.Then be at peace, except ye thirst for blood.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.i.171Stoop then and set your knee against my foot;Stoope then, and set your Knee against my Foot,
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.ii.35And then do execution on the watch.And then doe execution on the Watch.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.ii.62Belike your lordship takes us then for fools,Belike your Lordship takes vs then for fooles,
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.ii.100Then be it so. Heavens keep old Bedford safe!Then be it so: Heauens keepe old Bedford safe.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.ii.128And then depart to Paris to the King,And then depart to Paris, to the King,
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iii.16Employ thee then, sweet virgin, for our good.Employ thee then, sweet Virgin, for our good.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iii.17Then thus it must be; this doth Joan devise:Then thus it must be, this doth Ioane deuise:
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iii.55Should grieve thee more than streams of foreign gore.Should grieue thee more then streames of forraine gore.
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iii.66Who then but English Henry will be lord,Who then, but English Henry, will be Lord,
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iii.74See then, thou fightest against thy countrymen,See then, thou fight'st against thy Countreymen,
Henry VI Part 11H6 III.iv.45And after meet you sooner than you would.And after meete you, sooner then you would.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.27Then judge, great lords, if I have done amiss,Then iudge (great Lords) if I haue done amisse:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.39He then that is not furnished in this sortHe then, that is not furnish'd in this sort,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.68Why then, Lord Talbot there shall talk with himWhy then Lord Talbot there shal talk with him,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.73Then gather strength and march unto him straight;Then gather strength, and march vnto him straight:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.88First let me know, and then I'll answer you.First let me know, and then Ile answer you.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.117And then your highness shall command a peace.And then your Highnesse shall command a Peace.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.119Betwixt ourselves let us decide it then.Betwixt our selues let vs decide it then.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.159Than I am able to instruct or teach;Then I am able to instruct or teach:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.i.186Than yet can be imagined or supposed.Then yet can be imagin'd or suppos'd:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.ii.48If we be English deer, be then in blood;If we be English Deere, be then in blood,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.iii.7Two mightier troops than that the Dauphin led,Two mightier Troopes then that the Dolphin led,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.iii.34Then God take mercy on brave Talbot's soulThen God take mercy on braue Talbots soule,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.iv.45If he be dead, brave Talbot, then adieu!If he be dead, braue Talbot then adieu.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.21Then let me stay, and, father, do you fly.Then let me stay, and Father doe you flye:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.33Rather than life preserved with infamy.Rather then Life, preseru'd with Infamie.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.35Ay, rather than I'll shame my mother's womb.I, rather then Ile shame my Mothers Wombe.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.44If death be so apparent, then both fly.If Death be so apparant, then both flye.
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.49Than can yourself yourself in twain divide.Then can your selfe, your selfe in twaine diuide:
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.v.52Then here I take my leave of thee, fair son,Then here I take my leaue of thee, faire Sonne,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.vi.12Of bold-faced victory. Then leaden age,Of bold-fac't Victorie. Then Leaden Age,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.vi.52Then talk no more of flight; it is no boot;Then talke no more of flight, it is no boot,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.vi.54Then follow thou thy desperate sire of Crete,Then follow thou thy desp'rate Syre of Creet,
Henry VI Part 11H6 IV.vii.28‘ Had Death been French, then Death had died today.’Had Death bene French, then Death had dyed to day.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.i.30Then I perceive that will be verifiedThen I perceiue, that will be verified
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.ii.4Then march to Paris, royal Charles of France,Then march to Paris Royall Charles of France,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.ii.21Then on, my lords; and France be fortunate!Then on my Lords, and France be fortunate.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iii.22Then take my soul – my body, soul, and all,Then take my soule; my body, soule, and all,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.ii.30.2fight hand to hand. York then fights with Joan lafight hand to hand.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iii.82Then how can Margaret be thy paramour?Then how can Margaret be thy Paramour?
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iii.105And then I need not crave his courtesy.And then I need not craue his curtesie.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iii.128Then call our captains and our colours forth!Then call our Captaines and our Colours forth,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iii.167(To them) I'll over then to England with this newsIle ouer then to England with this newes.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.60Then, Joan, discover thine infirmity,Then Ione discouer thine infirmity,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.63Murder not then the fruit within my womb,Murther not then the Fruite within my Wombe,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.86Then lead me hence; with whom I leave my curse:Then lead me hence: with whom I leaue my curse.
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.133Must he be then as shadow of himself?Must he be then as shadow of himselfe?
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.139With more than half the Gallian territories,With more then halfe the Gallian Territories,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.iv.169Then swear allegiance to his majesty:Then sweare Allegeance to his Maiesty,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.v.28How shall we then dispense with that contractHow shall we then dispense with that contract,
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.v.36Why, what, I pray, is Margaret more than that?Why what (I pray) is Margaret more then that?
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.v.56Than to be dealt in by attorneyship;Then to be dealt in by Atturney-ship:
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.v.71More than in women commonly is seen,(More then in women commonly is seene)
Henry VI Part 11H6 V.v.77Then yield, my lords, and here conclude with meThen yeeld my Lords,and heere conclude with mee,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.1.1Flourish of trumpets, then hautboys. Enter the King,Flourish of Trumpets: Then Hoboyes. Enter King,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.19Than this kind kiss. O Lord that lends me life,Then this kinde kisse: O Lord, that lends me life,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.163Why should he then protect our sovereign,Why should he then protect our Soueraigne?
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.174Than all the princes' in the land beside.Then all the Princes in the Land beside,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.184More like a soldier than a man o'th' church,More like a Souldier then a man o'th' Church,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.206Then let's make haste away, and look unto the main.Then lets make hast away, / And looke vnto the maine.
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.246Then, York, be still awhile till time do serve;Then Yorke be still a-while, till time do serue:
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.i.252Then will I raise aloft the milk-white rose,Then will I raise aloft the Milke-white-Rose,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.ii.41Nay, Eleanor, then must I chide outright:Nay Elinor, then must I chide outright:
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.2Lord Protector will come this way by and by, and thenLord Protector will come this way by and by, and then
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.69But can do more in England than the King.But can doe more in England then the King.
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.71Cannot do more in England than the Nevils;Cannot doe more in England then the Neuils:
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.76More like an empress than Duke Humphrey's wife.More like an Empresse, then Duke Humphreyes Wife:
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.84Was better worth than all my father's lands,Was better worth then all my Fathers Lands,
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.102Then let him be denayed the Regentship.Then let him be denay'd the Regent-ship.
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iii.120Resign it then, and leave thine insolence.Resigne it then, and leaue thine insolence.
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iv.22.3te' etc. It thunders and lightens terribly; then thete, &c. It Thunders and Lightens terribly: then the
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iv.36Than where castles mounted stand.Then where Castles mounted stand.
Henry VI Part 22H6 I.iv.68Than where castles mounted stand.Then where Castles mounted stand.
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.14That mounts no higher than a bird can soar.That mounts no higher then a Bird can sore:
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.27No malice, sir; no more than well becomesNo mallice Sir, no more then well becomes
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.112Why then, thou knowest what colour jet is of?Why then, thou know'st what Colour Iet is of?
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.124Then, Saunder, sit there, the lyingest knaveThen Saunder, sit there, / The lying'st Knaue
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.136Then send for one presently.Then send for one presently.
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.i.158But you have done more miracles than I;But you haue done more Miracles then I:
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.ii.9Then thus:Then thus:
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.ii.53What plain proceedings is more plain than this?What plaine proceedings is more plain then this?
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.ii.59Then, father Salisbury, kneel we together,Then Father Salisbury, kneele we together,
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.iii.27Than when thou wert Protector to thy King.Then when thou wert Protector to thy King.
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.iii.57Or more afraid to fight, than is the appellant,Or more afraid to fight, then is the Appellant,
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.iii.84Thump? Then see thou thump thy master well.Thumpe? Then see thou thumpe thy Master well.
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.iv.97And shall I then be used reproachfully?And shall I then be vs'd reproachfully?
Henry VI Part 22H6 II.iv.100Sheriff, farewell, and better than I fare,Sherife farewell, and better then I fare,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.23Me seemeth then it is no policy,Me seemeth then, it is no Pollicie,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.74Ah, what's more dangerous than this fond affiance?Ah what's more dangerous, then this fond affiance?
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.96Unless thou wert more loyal than thou art.Vnlesse thou wert more loyall then thou art:
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.120I say no more than truth, so help me God!I say no more then truth, so helpe me God.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.183Far truer spoke than meant. I lose indeed;Farre truer spoke then meant: I lose indeede,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.201For what's more miserable than discontent?For what's more miserable then Discontent?
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.231Believe me, lords, were none more wise than I – Beleeue me Lords, were none more wise then I,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.242More than mistrust, that shows him worthy death.More then mistrust, that shewes him worthy death.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.252Madam, 'tis true; and were't not madness thenMadame 'tis true: and wer't not madnesse then,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.298Than bring a burden of dishonour home,Then bring a burthen of dis-honour home,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.302Nay then, this spark will prove a raging fireNay then, this sparke will proue a raging fire,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.306Might happily have proved far worse than his.Might happily haue prou'd farre worse then his.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.307What, worse than naught? Nay, then a shame take all!What, worse then naught? nay, then a shame take all.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.318Then, noble York, take thou this task in hand.Then, Noble Yorke, take thou this Taske in hand.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.339My brain, more busy than the labouring spider,My Brayne, more busie then the laboring Spider,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.i.380Why, then from Ireland come I with my strength,Why then from Ireland come I with my strength,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.21Than from true evidence of good esteem,Then from true euidence, of good esteeme,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.73Be woe for me, more wretched than he is.Be woe for me, more wretched then he is.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.79Why, then, Dame Margaret was ne'er thy joy.Why then Dame Elianor was neere thy ioy.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.88What did I then, but cursed the gentle gustsWhat did I then? But curst the gentle gusts,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.99Because thy flinty heart, more hard than they,Because thy flinty heart more hard then they,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.133And comment then upon his sudden death.And comment then vpon his sodaine death.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.135.1Exeunt Warwick, then Salisbury
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.186Then you belike suspect these noblemenThan you belike suspect these Noblemen,
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.232What stronger breastplate than a heart untainted!What stronger Brest-plate then a heart vntainted?
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.322Gall, worse than gall, the daintiest that they taste!Gall, worse then Gall, the daintiest that they taste:
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.355Loather a hundred times to part than die.Loather a hundred times to part then dye;
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.399And then it lived in sweet Elysium.And then it liu'd in sweete Elizium.
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.ii.401From thee to die were torture more than death.From thee to dye, were torture more then death:
Henry VI Part 22H6 III.iii.12Alive again? Then show me where he is;Aliue againe? Then shew me where he is,
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.i.108Than Bargulus, the strong Illyrian pirate.Then Bargulus the strong Illyrian Pyrate.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.i.127Stoop to the block than these knees bow to anyStoope to the blocke, then these knees bow to any,
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.i.130Than stand uncovered to the vulgar groom.Then stand vncouer'd to the Vulgar Groome.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.i.132More can I bear than you dare execute.More can I beare, then you dare execute.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.3They have the more need to sleep now then.They haue the more neede to sleepe now then.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.20brave mind than a hard hand.braue minde, then a hard hand.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.26Then is sin struck down like an ox, and iniquity'sThen is sin strucke downe like an Oxe, and iniquities
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.60Be brave then; for your captain is brave, and vowsBe braue then, for your Captaine is Braue, and Vowes
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.86Nay, then he is a conjurer.Nay then he is a Coniurer.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.157than that, he can speak French; and therefore he is athen that, he can speake French, and therefore hee is a
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.161enemies; go to, then, I ask but this: can he that speaksenemies: go too then, I ask but this: Can he that speaks
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ii.179But then are we in order when we are most outBut then are we in order, when we are most out
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.iv.12Rather than bloody war shall cut them short,Rather then bloody Warre shall cut them short,
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.iv.54Then linger not, my lord. Away! Take horse!Then linger not my Lord, away, take horse.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.v.1.1Enter Lord Scales upon the Tower, walking. ThenEnter Lord Scales vpon the Tower walking. Then
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vi.6other than Lord Mortimer.other then Lord Mortimer.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vi.13Come then, let's go fight with them. But first,Come, then let's go fight with them: / But first,
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.1.2Then enter Jack Cade with his companyThen enter Iacke Cade, with his Company.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.7Mass, 'twill be sore law then, for he wasMasse 'twill be sore Law then, for he was
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.14Then we are like to have biting statutes,Then we are like to haue biting Statutes
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.46cloak, when honester men than thou go in their hose andCloake, when honester men then thou go in their Hose and
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.83Ye shall have a hempen caudle then, and the help ofYe shall haue a hempen Candle then, & the help of
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.vii.103and then break into his son-in-law's house, Sir Jamesand then breake into his Sonne in Lawes house, Sir Iames
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.viii.47Than you should stoop unto a Frenchman's mercy.Then you should stoope vnto a Frenchmans mercy.
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ix.2And could command no more content than I?And could command no more content then I?
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.ix.13Then, heaven, set ope thy everlasting gatesThen heauen set ope thy euerlasting gates,
Henry VI Part 22H6 IV.x.30I know thee not; why then should I betray thee?I know thee not, why then should I betray thee?
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.28I am far better born than is the King,I am farre better borne then is the king:
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.44Then, Buckingham, I do dismiss my powers.Then Buckingham I do dismisse my Powres.
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.60Then what intends these forces thou dost bring?Then what intends these Forces thou dost bring?
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.88Then, York, unloose thy long-imprisoned thoughtsThen Yorke vnloose thy long imprisoned thoughts,
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.140And if words will not, then our weapons shall.And if words will not, then our Weapons shal.
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.199Than any thou canst conjure up today;Then any thou canst coniure vp to day:
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.i.215Foul stigmatic, that's more than thou canst tell.Foule stygmaticke that's more then thou canst tell.
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.ii.16Then nobly, York; 'tis for a crown thou fightest.Then nobly Yorke, 'tis for a Crown thou fightst:
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.ii.64But then Aeneas bare a living load,But then, Aeneas bare a liuing loade;
Henry VI Part 22H6 V.ii.78If you be ta'en, we then should see the bottomIf you be tane, we then should see the bottome
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.28Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will;Assist me then, sweet Warwick, and I will,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.43Then leave me not; my lords, be resolute;Then leaue me not, my Lords be resolute,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.97Than drops of blood were in my father's veins.Then drops of bloud were in my Fathers Veines.
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.130My title's good, and better far than his.My Title's good, and better farre then his.
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.136What then?What then?
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.137An if he may, then am I lawful king;And if he may, then am I lawfull King:
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.224Rather than have made that savage Duke thine heirRather then haue made that sauage Duke thine Heire,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.i.262I'll see your grace; till then I'll follow her.Ile see your Grace: till then, Ile follow her.
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.ii.26Then, seeing 'twas he that made you to depose,Then seeing 'twas he that made you to depose,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.iii.23Then let my father's blood open it again;Then let my Fathers blood open it againe,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.iii.45Then let me die, for now thou hast no cause.Then let me dye, for now thou hast no cause.
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.iv.111She-wolf of France, but worse than wolves of France,Shee-Wolfe of France, / But worse then Wolues of France,
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.iv.112Whose tongue more poisons than the adder's tooth!Whose Tongue more poysons then the Adders Tooth:
Henry VI Part 33H6 I.iv.155O, ten times more, than tigers of Hyrcania.Oh, tenne times more then Tygers of Hyrcania.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.42You love the breeder better than the male.You loue the Breeder better then the Male.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.86Tears then for babes, blows and revenge for me!Teares then for Babes; Blowes, and Reuenge for mee.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.99The words would add more anguish than the wounds.The words would adde more anguish then the wounds.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.106I come to tell you things sith then befallen.I come to tell you things sith then befalne.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.111I, then in London, keeper of the King,I then in London, keeper of the King,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.125Or more than common fear of Clifford's rigour,Or more then common feare of Cliffords Rigour,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.200Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as steel,Then Clifford, were thy heart as hard as Steele,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.203Then strike up drums; God and Saint George for us!Then strike vp Drums, God and S. George for vs.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.i.208Why then it sorts, brave warriors; let's away.Why then it sorts, braue Warriors, let's away.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.53Than in possession any jot of pleasure.Then in possession any iot of pleasure.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.77Be it with resolution then to fight.Be it with resolution then to fight.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.104Your legs did better service than your hands.Your legges did better seruice then your hands.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.105Then 'twas my turn to fly, and now 'tis thine.Then 'twas my turne to fly, and now 'tis thine:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.118Defy them then, or else hold close thy lips.Defie them then, or els hold close thy lips.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.123Then, executioner, unsheathe thy sword.Then Executioner vnsheath thy sword:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.146Helen of Greece was fairer far than thou,Helen of Greece was fayrer farre then thou,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.ii.156Even then that sunshine brewed a shower for himEuen then that Sun-shine brew'd a showre for him,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.iii.23Then let the earth be drunken with our blood;Then let the earth be drunken with our blood:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.9Sometime the flood prevails, and then the wind;Sometime, the Flood preuailes; and than the Winde:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.10Now one the better, then another best;Now, one the better: then, another best;
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.22To be no better than a homely swain;To be no better then a homely Swaine,
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.30When this is known, then to divide the times:When this is knowne, then to diuide the Times:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.44Than doth a rich embroidered canopyThen doth a rich Imbroider'd Canopie
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.v.124Here sits a king more woeful than you are.Heere sits a King, more wofull then you are.
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.vi.4More than my body's parting with my soul!More then my Bodies parting with my Soule:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.vi.17They never then had sprung like summer flies;They neuer then had sprung like Sommer Flyes:
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.vi.41Clifford groans and then diesClifford grones
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.vi.77What! Not an oath? Nay, then the world goes hardWhat, not an Oath? Nay then the world go's hard
Henry VI Part 33H6 II.vi.97And then to Brittany I'll cross the seaAnd then to Britanny Ile crosse the Sea,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.i.35By this account then Margaret may win him;By this account then, Margaret may winne him,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.i.54Art then forsaken, as thou wentest forlorn!Art then forsaken, as thou went'st forlorne.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.i.56More than I seem, and less than I was born to:More then I seeme, and lesse then I was born to:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.i.79And tell me, then, have you not broke your oaths?And tell me then, haue you not broke your Oathes?
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.3His lands then seized on by the conqueror.His Land then seiz'd on by the Conqueror,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.21Ay, widow? Then I'll warrant you all your lands,I Widow? then Ile warrant you all your Lands,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.28Nay then, whip me; he'll rather give her two.Nay then whip me: hee'le rather giue her two.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.32Be pitiful, dread lord, and grant it then.Be pittifull, dread Lord, and graunt it then.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.40Then get your husband's lands, to do them good.Then get your Husbands Lands, to doe them good.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.49Why, then I will do what your grace commands.Why then I will doe what your Grace commands.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.51As red as fire! Nay, then her wax must melt.As red as fire? nay then, her Wax must melt.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.55Why, then, thy husband's lands I freely give thee.Why then, thy Husbands Lands I freely giue thee.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.65Why, then you mean not as I thought you did.Why then you meane not, as I thought you did.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.71Why, then thou shalt not have thy husband's lands.Why then thou shalt not haue thy Husbands Lands.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.72Why, then mine honesty shall be my dower;Why then mine Honestie shall be my Dower,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.81Then, no, my lord. My suit is at an end.Then No, my Lord: my suit is at an end.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.90'Tis better said than done, my gracious lord.'Tis better said then done, my gracious Lord:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.94I speak no more than what my soul intends;I speake no more then what my Soule intends,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.96And that is more than I will yield unto.And that is more then I will yeeld vnto:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.101No more than when my daughters call thee mother.No more, then when my Daughters / Call thee Mother.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.114That's a day longer than a wonder lasts.That's a day longer then a Wonder lasts.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.134Why then, I do but dream on sovereignty;Why then I doe but dreame on Soueraigntie,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.146Well, say there is no kingdom then for Richard,Well, say there is no Kingdome then for Richard:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.152Than to accomplish twenty golden crowns!Then to accomplish twentie Golden Crownes.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.163And am I then a man to be beloved?And am I then a man to be belou'd?
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.165Then, since this earth affords no joy to meThen since this Earth affoords no Ioy to me,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.167As are of better person than myself,As are of better Person then my selfe:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.186I'll drown more sailors than the mermaid shall;Ile drowne more Saylers then the Mermaid shall,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.187I'll slay more gazers than the basilisk;Ile slay more gazers then the Basiliske,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.ii.189Deceive more slily than Ulysses could,Deceiue more slyly then Vlisses could,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.53And then to crave a league of amity;And then to craue a League of Amitie:
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.80And thou no more art prince than she is queen.And thou no more art Prince, then shee is Queene.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.81Then Warwick disannuls great John of Gaunt,Then Warwicke disanulls great Iohn of Gaunt,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.103Was done to death? And more than so, my father,Was done to death? and more then so, my Father,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.119Then further, all dissembling set aside,Then further: all dissembling set aside,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.134Then, Warwick, thus: our sister shall be Edward's;Then Warwicke, thus: / Our Sister shall be Edwards.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.147Then 'tis but reason that I be releasedThen 'tis but reason, that I be releas'd
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.155And better 'twere you troubled him than France.And better 'twere, you troubled him, then France.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.210For matching more for wanton lust than honour,For matching more for wanton Lust, then Honor,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.211Or than for strength and safety of our country.Or then for strength and safety of our Country.
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.222Then, England's messenger, return in postThen Englands Messenger, returne in Poste,
Henry VI Part 33H6 III.iii.261Then none but I shall turn his jest to sorrow.Then none but I, shall turne his Iest to Sorrow.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.29Then this is mine opinion: that King LewisThen this is mine opinion: / That King Lewis
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.38'Gainst foreign storms than any home-bred marriage.'Gainst forraine stormes, then any home-bred Marriage.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.42'Tis better using France than trusting France;'Tis better vsing France, then trusting France:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.71And meaner than myself have had like fortune.And meaner then my selfe haue had like fortune.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.109Than all the rest, discharged me with these words:Then all the rest, discharg'd me with these words:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.136Tell me if you love Warwick more than me.Tell me, if you loue Warwicke more then me;
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.137If it be so, then both depart to him;If it be so, then both depart to him:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.138I rather wish you foes than hollow friends.I rather wish you foes, then hollow friends.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.i.146Why, so. Then am I sure of victory.Why so: then am I sure of Victorie.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.ii.6Then, gentle Clarence, welcome unto Warwick;Then gentle Clarence, welcome vnto Warwicke,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.ii.28Why, then, let's on our way in silent sort;Why then, let's on our way in silent sort,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iii.7Tomorrow then belike shall be the day,To morrow then belike shall be the day,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iii.17I like it better than a dangerous honour.I like it better then a dangerous honor.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iii.34Then I degraded you from being king,Then I degraded you from being King,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iii.43Nay, then I see that Edward needs must down.Nay then I see, that Edward needs must downe.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iii.49Then, for his mind, be Edward England's king.Then for his minde, be Edward Englands King,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iv.6Then is my sovereign slain?Then is my Soueraigne slaine?
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iv.16Till then fair hope must hinder life's decay;Till then, faire hope must hinder liues decay:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.iv.25But, madam, where is Warwick then become?But Madam, / Where is Warwicke then become?
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.v.20.1But whither shall we then?But whether shall we then?
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.v.26Better do so than tarry and be hanged.Better do so, then tarry and be hang'd.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.v.27Come then, away; let's ha' no more ado.Come then away, lets ha no more adoo.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vi.8I then crave pardon of your majesty.I then craue pardon of your Maiestie.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vi.48Why then, though loath, yet must I be content;Why then, though loth, yet must I be content:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vi.53And, Clarence, now then it is more than needfulAnd Clarence, now then it is more then needfull,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vi.76Must help you more than you are hurt by me.Must helpe you more, then you are hurt by mee.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.7What then remains, we being thus arrivedWhat then remaines, we being thus arriu'd
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.29Ay, say you so? The gates shall then be opened.I, say you so? the Gates shall then be opened.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.48Then fare you well, for I will hence again;Then fare you well, for I will hence againe,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.59When we grow stronger, then we'll make our claim;When wee grow stronger, / Then wee'le make our Clayme:
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.60Till then, 'tis wisdom to conceal our meaning.Till then, 'tis wisdome to conceale our meaning.
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.vii.65Then be it as you will; for 'tis my right,Then be it as you will: for 'tis my right,
Henry VI Part 33H6 IV.viii.47Then why should they love Edward more than me?Then why should they loue Edward more then me?
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.11Then Clarence is at hand; I hear his drum.Then Clarence is at hand, I heare his Drumme.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.35Why then, 'tis mine, if but by Warwick's gift.Why then 'tis mine, if but by Warwickes gift.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.52Than bear so low a sail to strike to thee.Then beare so low a sayle, to strike to thee.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.79More than the nature of a brother's love!More then the nature of a Brothers Loue.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.91Than Jephthah, when he sacrificed his daughter.Then Iephah, when he sacrific'd his Daughter.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.i.104Than if thou never hadst deserved our hate.Then if thou neuer hadst deseru'd our hate.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.ii.33Why, then I would not fly. Ah, Montague,Why then I would not flye. Ah Mountague,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.iv.36More than with ruthless waves, with sands and rocks.More then with ruthlesse Waues, with Sands and Rocks.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.iv.37Why, courage then! What cannot be avoidedWhy courage then, what cannot be auoided,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.iv.81You fight in justice; then in God's name, lords,You fight in Iustice: then in Gods Name, Lords,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.v.58What's worse than murderer, that I may name it?What's worse then Murtherer, that I may name it?
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.v.71What! Wilt thou not? Then, Clarence, do it thou.What? wilt thou not? Then Clarence do it thou.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.28Than can my ears that tragic history.Then can my eares that Tragicke History.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.33Why, then thou art an executioner.Why then thou art an Executioner.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.49Thy mother felt more than a mother's pain,Thy Mother felt more then a Mothers paine,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.50And yet brought forth less than a mother's hope,And yet brought forth lesse then a Mothers hope,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.78Then, since the heavens have shaped my body so,Then since the Heauens haue shap'd my Body so,
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.88And then, to purge his fear, I'll be thy death.And then to purge his feare, Ile be thy death.
Henry VI Part 33H6 V.vi.90Clarence, thy turn is next, and then the rest,Clarence thy turne is next, and then the rest,
Henry VIIIH8 prologue.29Of thousand friends: then, in a moment, seeOf thousand Friends: Then, in a moment, see
Henry VIIIH8 prologue.31And if you can be merry then, I'll sayAnd if you can be merry then, Ile say,
Henry VIIIH8 I.i.8I was then present, saw them salute on horseback,I was then present, saw them salute on Horsebacke,
Henry VIIIH8 I.i.13.2Then you lostThen you lost
Henry VIIIH8 I.i.118Well, we shall then know more, and BuckinghamWell, we shall then know more, & Buckingham
Henry VIIIH8 I.i.147More stronger to direct you than yourself,More stronger to direct you then your selfe;
Henry VIIIH8 I.ii.44You know no more than others? But you frameYou know no more then others? But you frame
Henry VIIIH8 I.ii.69I have no further gone in this than byI haue no further gone in this, then by
Henry VIIIH8 I.ii.81Than vainly longing. What we oft do best,Then vainly longing. What we oft doe best,
Henry VIIIH8 I.ii.118Than ever they were fair. This man so complete,Then euer they were faire. This man so compleat,
Henry VIIIH8 I.iii.28Abusing better men than they can beAbusing better men then they can be
Henry VIIIH8 I.iii.60Sparing would show a worse sin than ill doctrine.Sparing would shew a worse sinne, then ill Doctrine,
Henry VIIIH8 I.iv.1.2a longer table for the guests. Then enter Anne Bullena longer Table for the Guests. Then Enter Anne Bullen,
Henry VIIIH8 I.iv.44In their fair cheeks, my lord; then we shall have 'emIn their faire cheekes my Lord, then wee shall haue 'em,
Henry VIIIH8 I.iv.79More worthy this place than myself, to whom,More worthy this place then my selfe, to whom
Henry VIIIH8 I.iv.84.2Let me see then.Let me see then,
Henry VIIIH8 I.iv.107To lead 'em once again; and then let's dreamTo lead 'em once againe, and then let's dreame
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.42Then deputy of Ireland, who removed,Then Deputy of Ireland, who remou'd
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.57Hear what I say, and then go home and lose me.Heare what I say, and then goe home and lose me.
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.68For then my guiltless blood must cry against 'em.For then, my guiltlesse blood must cry against 'em.
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.71More than I dare make faults. You few that loved me,More then I dare make faults. / You few that lou'd me,
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.91Longer than I have time to tell his years;Longer then I haue time to tell his yeares;
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.96Then give my charge up to Sir Nicholas Vaux,Then giue my Charge vp to Sir Nicholas Vaux,
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.104Yet I am richer than my base accusersYet I am richer then my base Accusers,
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.120A little happier than my wretched father:A little happier then my wretched Father:
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.142.1Greater than this.Greater then this.
Henry VIIIH8 II.i.155Fresher than e'er it was, and held for certainFresher then e're it was; and held for certaine
Henry VIIIH8 II.ii.123Believe me, there's an ill opinion spread then,Beleeue me, there's an ill opinion spread then,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.8To leave a thousandfold more bitter thanTo leaue, a thousand fold more bitter, then
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.21Than to be perked up in a glistering griefThen to be perk'd vp in a glistring griefe,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.40Then you are weakly made. Pluck off a little;Then you are weakly made; plucke off a little,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.42For more than blushing comes to. If your backFor more then blushing comes to: If your backe
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.63Than Marchioness of Pembroke; to which titleThen Marchionesse of Pembrooke; to which Title,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.67More than my all is nothing; nor my prayersMore then my All, is Nothing: Nor my Prayers
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.69More worth than empty vanities; yet prayers and wishesMore worth, then empty vanities: yet Prayers & Wishes
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.98Is longer than his foreskirt. By this timeIs longer then his fore-skirt; by this time
Henry VIIIH8 II.iii.100.1Are you not stronger than you were?Are you not stronger then you were?
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.1.7purse, with the great seal, and a cardinal's hat; thenPurse, with the great Seale, and a Cardinals Hat: Then
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.1.8two Priests bearing each a silver cross; then Griffith,two Priests, bearing each a Siluer Crosse: Then
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.1.10Sergeant-at-Arms bearing a silver mace; then twoSergeant at Armes, bearing a Siluer Mace: Then two
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.5.1You may then spare that time.You may then spare that time.
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.13.3his feet; then speakshis Feete. Then speakes.
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.116You tender more your person's honour thanYou tender more your persons Honor, then
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.169Then mark th' inducement. Thus it came – give heed to't:Then marke th'inducement. Thus it came; giue heede too't:
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.172By th' Bishop of Bayonne, then French ambassador,By th'Bishop of Bayon, then French Embassador,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.190Do no more offices of life to't thanDoe no more Offices of life too't; then
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.196Be gladded in't by me. Then follows thatBe gladded in't by me. Then followes, that
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.204I then did feel full sick, and yet not well,I then did feele full sicke, and yet not well,
Henry VIIIH8 II.iv.217.2I then moved you,I then mou'd you,
Henry VIIIH8 III.i.11Hung their heads, and then lay by.Hung their heads, & then lay by.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.88There's more in't than fair visage. Bullen!There's more in't then faire Visage. Bullen?
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.97Then out it goes. What though I know her virtuousThen out it goes. What though I know her vertuous
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.115Then lays his finger on his temple; straightThen layes his finger on his Temple: straight
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.116Springs out into fast gait; then stops again,Springs out into fast gate, then stops againe,
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.167Showered on me daily, have been more than couldShowr'd on me daily, haue bene more then could
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.186On you than any, so your hand and heart,On you, then any: So your Hand, and Heart,
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.190.1To me, your friend, than any.To me your Friend, then any.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.192More than mine own; that am, have, and will be – More then mine owne: that am, haue, and will be
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.202And after, this; and then to breakfast withAnd after this, and then to Breakfast with
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.208Then makes him nothing. I must read this paper:Then makes him nothing. I must reade this paper:
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.222I writ to's holiness. Nay then, farewell!I writ too's Holinesse. Nay then, farewell:
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.236Till I find more than will or words to do it – Till I finde more then will, or words to do it,
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.251.2It must be himself then.It must be himselfe then.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.254.1Have burnt that tongue than said so.Haue burnt that Tongue, then saide so.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.274Dare mate a sounder man than Surrey can be,Dare mate a sounder man then Surrie can be,
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.295Worse than the sacring bell, when the brown wenchWorse then the Sacring Bell, when the browne Wench
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.309I had rather want those than my head. Have at you!I had rather want those, then my head; / Haue at you.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.313Then, that in all you writ to Rome, or elseThen, That in all you writ to Rome, or else
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.316.2Then, that without the knowledgeThen, that without the knowledge
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.326Then, that you have sent innumerable substance – Then, That you haue sent inumerable substance,
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.358And then he falls, as I do. I have ventured,And then he fals as I do. I haue ventur'd
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.370More pangs and fears than wars or women have;More pangs, and feares then warres, or women haue;
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.390Than my weak-hearted enemies dare offer.Then my Weake-hearted Enemies, dare offer.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.422Must I then leave you? Must I needs forgoMust I then leaue you? Must I needes forgo
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.441By that sin fell the angels. How can man then,By that sinne fell the Angels: how can man then
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.444Corruption wins not more than honesty.Corruption wins not more then Honesty.
Henry VIIIH8 III.ii.448Thy God's, and truth's. Then if thou fall'st, O Cromwell,Thy Gods, and Truths. Then if thou fall'st (O Cromwell)
Henry VIIIH8 IV.i.37.42. Then two Judges2 Then, two Iudges.
Henry VIIIH8 IV.i.37.85. Mayor of London, bearing the mace. Then Garter,5 Maior of London, bearing the Mace. Then Garter,
Henry VIIIH8 IV.i.37.27The procession passes over the stage in order and state, and then a great flourish of trumpetsExeunt, first passing ouer the Stage in Order and State,and then, A great Flourish of Trumpets.
Henry VIIIH8 IV.i.56.1The end of the procession leaves; and then a great
Henry VIIIH8 IV.i.85Then rose again, and bowed her to the people;Then rose againe, and bow'd her to the people:
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.41His promises were as he then was, mighty,His Promises, were as he then was, Mighty:
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.65For then, and not till then, he felt himself,For then, and not till then, he felt himselfe,
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.68Than man could give him, he died fearing God.Then man could giue him; he dy'de, fearing God.
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.83.6congie unto her, then dance; and, at certain changes,Conge vnto her, then Dance: and at certaine Changes,
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.83.8which the other four make reverent curtsies. Then thewhich the other foure make reuerend Curtsies. Then the
Henry VIIIH8 IV.ii.171Then lay me forth; although unqueened, yet likeThen lay me forth (although vnqueen'd) yet like
Henry VIIIH8 V.i.15In them a wilder nature than the businessIn them a wilder Nature, then the businesse
Henry VIIIH8 V.i.18Much weightier than this work. The Queen's in labour,Much waightier then this worke. The Queens in Labor
Henry VIIIH8 V.i.113.1Than I myself, poor man.Then I my selfe, poore man.
Henry VIIIH8 V.i.136I mean in perjured witness, than your Master,I meane in periur'd Witnesse, then your Master,
Henry VIIIH8 V.i.143They shall no more prevail than we give way to.They shall no more preuaile, then we giue way too:
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.15Toward the King first, then his laws, in fillingToward the King first, then his Lawes, in filling
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.27Farewell all physic – and what follows then?Farewell all Physicke: and what followes then?
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.41Defacers of a public peace than I do.Defacers of a publique peace then I doe:
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.57More than, I fear, you are provided for.More then (I feare) you are prouided for.
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.63Become a churchman better than ambition.Become a Churchman, better then Ambition:
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.83Men's prayers then would seek you, not their fears.Mens prayers then would seeke you, not their feares.
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.87Then thus for you, my lord: it stands agreed,Then thus for you my Lord, it stands agreed
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.133Than but once think this place becomes thee not.Then but once thinke his place becomes thee not.
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.145More out of malice than integrity,More out of Malice then Integrity,
Henry VIIIH8 V.iii.152And fair purgation to the world than malice,And faire purgation to the world then malice,
Henry VIIIH8 V.v.1.1Enter trumpets, sounding; then two Aldermen, LordEnter Trumpets sounding: Then two Aldermen, L.
Henry VIIIH8 V.v.1.5then four noblemen bearing a canopy, under which theThen foure Noblemen bearing a Canopy, vnder which the
Henry VIIIH8 V.v.1.8then follows the Marchioness Dorset, the other godmother,Then followes the Marchionesse Dorset, the other Godmother,
Henry VIIIH8 V.v.25Than this pure soul shall be. All princely gracesThen this pure Soule shall be. All Princely Graces
Henry VIIIH8 V.v.49Shall then be his, and like a vine grow to him.Shall then be his, and like a Vine grow to him;
Julius CaesarJC I.i.35You blocks, you stones, you worse than senseless things!You Blockes, you stones, you worse then senslesse things:
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.16I hear a tongue shriller than all the musicI heare a Tongue shriller then all the Musicke
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.46Than that poor Brutus, with himself at war,Then that poore Brutus with himselfe at warre,
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.48Then, Brutus, I have much mistook your passion,Then Brutus, I haue much mistook your passion,
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.78To all the rout, then hold me dangerous.To all the Rout, then hold me dangerous.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.81Then must I think you would not have it so.Then must I thinke you would not haue it so.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.89The name of honour more than I fear death.The name of Honor, more then I feare death.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.142Why should that name be sounded more than yours?Why should that name be sounded more then yours.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.152But it was famed with more than with one man?But it was fam'd with more then with one man?
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.170Till then, my noble friend, chew upon this:Till then, my Noble Friend, chew vpon this:
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.172Than to repute himself a son of RomeThen to repute himselfe a Sonne of Rome
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.208Whiles they behold a greater than themselves,Whiles they behold a greater then themselues,
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.211Than what I fear; for always I am Caesar.Then what I feare: for alwayes I am Casar.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.218I should not then ask Casca what had chanced.I should not then aske Caska what had chanc'd.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.221and then the people fell a-shouting.and then the people fell a shouting.
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.228time gentler than other; and at every putting-by minetime gentler then other; and at euery putting by, mine
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.238had it. Then he offered it to him again; then he put it byhad it. Then hee offered it to him againe: then hee put it by
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.240fingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; hefingers off it. And then he offered it the third time; hee
Julius CaesarJC I.ii.304I will do so: till then, think of the world.I will doe so: till then, thinke of the World.
Julius CaesarJC I.iii.39Good night then, Casca: this disturbed skyGood-night then, Caska: This disturbed Skie
Julius CaesarJC I.iii.76A man no mightier than thyself, or me,A man no mightier then thy selfe, or me,
Julius CaesarJC I.iii.89I know where I will wear this dagger then:I know where I will weare this Dagger then;
Julius CaesarJC I.iii.103And why should Caesar be a tyrant then?And why should Casar be a Tyrant then?
Julius CaesarJC I.iii.113Before a willing bondman; then I knowBefore a willing Bond-man: then I know
Julius CaesarJC II.i.16And then, I grant, we put a sting in himAnd then I graunt we put a Sting in him,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.21More than his reason. But 'tis a common proof,More then his Reason. But 'tis a common proofe,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.25He then unto the ladder turns his back,He then vnto the Ladder turnes his Backe,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.28Then, lest he may, prevent. And, since the quarrelThen least he may, preuent. And since the Quarrell
Julius CaesarJC II.i.67Are then in council; and the state of man,Are then in councell; and the state of a man,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.68Like to a little kingdom, suffers thenLike to a little Kingdome, suffers then
Julius CaesarJC II.i.79When evils are most free? O then, by dayWhen euills are most free? O then, by day
Julius CaesarJC II.i.122The melting spirits of women, then, countrymen,The melting Spirits of women. Then Countrymen,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.125Than secret Romans that have spoke the word,Then secret Romans, that haue spoke the word,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.127Than honesty to honesty engagedThen Honesty to Honesty ingag'd,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.152.2Then leave him out.Then leaue him out.
Julius CaesarJC II.i.163To cut the head off and then hack the limbs,To cut the Head off, and then hacke the Limbes:
Julius CaesarJC II.i.169O, that we then could come by Caesar's spirit,O that we then could come by Casars Spirit,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.182For he can do no more than Caesar's armFor he can do no more then Casars Arme,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.208He says he does, being then most flattered.He sayes, he does; being then most flattered.
Julius CaesarJC II.i.214Be that the uttermost, and fail not then.Be that the vttermost, and faile not then.
Julius CaesarJC II.i.243I urged you further; then you scratched your head,I vrg'd you further, then you scratch'd your head,
Julius CaesarJC II.i.291If this were true, then should I know this secret.If this were true, then should I know this secret.
Julius CaesarJC II.i.296Think you I am no stronger than my sex,Thinke you, I am no stronger then my Sex
Julius CaesarJC II.i.334.2Follow me then.Follow me then.
Julius CaesarJC II.ii.45That Caesar is more dangerous than he.That Casar is more dangerous then he.
Julius CaesarJC III.i.49Is there no voice more worthy than my own,Is there no voyce more worthy then my owne,
Julius CaesarJC III.i.77Et tu, Brute? – Then fall Caesar!Et Tu Brute? ---Then fall Casar.
Julius CaesarJC III.i.103Grant that, and then is death a benefit:Grant that, and then is Death a Benefit:
Julius CaesarJC III.i.108Then walk we forth, even to the market-place,Then walke we forth, euen to the Market place,
Julius CaesarJC III.i.111Stoop then, and wash. How many ages henceStoop then, and wash. How many Ages hence
Julius CaesarJC III.i.116.1No worthier than the dust!No worthier then the dust?
Julius CaesarJC III.i.181And then we will deliver you the causeAnd then, we will deliuer you the cause,
Julius CaesarJC III.i.195If then thy spirit look upon us now,If then thy Spirit looke vpon vs now,
Julius CaesarJC III.i.196Shall it not grieve thee dearer than thy death,Shall it not greeue thee deerer then thy death,
Julius CaesarJC III.i.202It would become me better than to closeIt would become me better, then to close
Julius CaesarJC III.i.213Then, in a friend, it is cold modesty.Then, in a Friend, it is cold Modestie.
Julius CaesarJC III.i.242It shall advantage more than do us wrong.It shall aduantage more, then do vs wrong.
Julius CaesarJC III.i.253Prepare the body, then, and follow us.Prepare the body then, and follow vs.
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.2Then follow me, and give me audience, friends.Then follow me, and giue me Audience friends.
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.19that Brutus' love to Caesar was no less than his. If then that Brutus loue to Casar, was no lesse then his. If then,
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.23and die all slaves, than that Caesar were dead, to liveand dye all Slaues; then that Casar were dead, to liue
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.36Then none have I offended. I have done no moreThen none haue I offended. I haue done no more
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.37to Caesar than you shall do to Brutus. The question ofto Casar, then you shall do to Brutus. The Question of
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.104What cause withholds you then to mourn for him?What cause with-holds you then, to mourne for him?
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.117There's not a nobler man in Rome than Antony.There's not a Nobler man in Rome then Antony.
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.128Than I will wrong such honourable men.Then I will wrong such Honourable men.
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.158You will compel me then to read the will?You will compell me then to read the Will:
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.159Then make a ring about the corpse of Caesar,Then make a Ring about the Corpes of Casar,
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.186Ingratitude, more strong than traitors' arms,Ingratitude, more strong then Traitors armes,
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.187Quite vanquished him: then burst his mighty heart;Quite vanquish'd him: then burst his Mighty heart,
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.192Then I, and you, and all of us fell down,Then I, and you, and all of vs fell downe,
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.233Away then! Come, seek the conspirators.Away then, come, seeke the Conspirators.
Julius CaesarJC III.ii.238Alas, you know not! I must tell you then:Alas you know not, I must tell you then:
Julius CaesarJC III.iii.14do I dwell? Am I a married man or a bachelor? Then todo I dwell? Am I a married man, or a Batchellour? Then to
Julius CaesarJC IV.i.1These many then shall die; their names are pricked.These many then shall die, their names are prickt
Julius CaesarJC IV.i.18Octavius, I have seen more days than you;Octauius, I haue seene more dayes then you,
Julius CaesarJC IV.i.25Then take we down his load, and turn him off,Then take we downe his Load, and turne him off
Julius CaesarJC IV.ii.46Then in my tent, Cassius, enlarge your griefs,Then in my Tent Cassius enlarge your Greefes,
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.28.1Than such a Roman.Then such a Roman.
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.31Older in practice, abler than yourselfOlder in practice, Abler then your selfe
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.73And drop my blood for drachmas, than to wringAnd drop my blood for Drachmaes, then to wring
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.86But Brutus makes mine greater than they are.But Brutus makes mine greater then they are.
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.101Dearer than Pluto's mine, richer than gold:Deerer then Pluto's Mine, Richer then Gold:
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.106.1Than ever thou lovedst Cassius.Then euer thou loued'st Cassius.
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.130For I have seen more years, I'm sure, than ye.For I haue seene more yeeres I'me sure then yee.
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.186Then like a Roman bear the truth I tell;Then like a Roman, beare the truth I tell,
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.222.2Then, with your will, go on;Then with your will go on: wee'l along
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.282Well; then I shall see thee again?Well: then I shall see thee againe?
Julius CaesarJC IV.iii.284Why, I will see thee at Philippi then.Why I will see thee at Philippi then:
Julius CaesarJC V.i.29Good words are better than bad strokes, Octavius.Good words are better then bad strokes Octauius.
Julius CaesarJC V.i.97If we do lose this battle, then is thisIf we do lose this Battaile, then is this
Julius CaesarJC V.i.99What are you then determined to do?What are you then determined to do?
Julius CaesarJC V.i.107.2Then, if we lose this battle,Then, if we loose this Battaile,
Julius CaesarJC V.i.118If not, why then this parting was well made.If not, why then this parting was well made.
Julius CaesarJC V.i.122Why then, lead on. O, that a man might knowWhy then leade on. O that a man might know
Julius CaesarJC V.i.125And then the end is known. Come, ho! Away!And then the end is knowne. Come ho, away.
Julius CaesarJC V.iii.38And then I swore thee, saving of thy life,And then I swore thee, sauing of thy life,
Julius CaesarJC V.iii.102To this dead man than you shall see me pay.To this dead man, then you shall see me pay.
Julius CaesarJC V.iv.29Such men my friends than enemies. Go on,Such men my Friends, then Enemies. Go on,
Julius CaesarJC V.v.7.1Peace then. No words.Peace then, no words.
Julius CaesarJC V.v.25Than tarry till they push us. Good Volumnius,Then tarry till they push vs. Good Volumnius,
Julius CaesarJC V.v.37More than Octavius and Mark AntonyMore then Octauius, and Marke Antony,
Julius CaesarJC V.v.47Hold then my sword, and turn away thy face,Hold then my Sword, and turne away thy face,
Julius CaesarJC V.v.66Octavius, then take him to follow thee,Octauius, then take him to follow thee,
King Edward IIIE3 I.i.38What then should subjects but embrace their king?What then should subiects but imbrace their King,
King Edward IIIE3 I.i.40Than striving to rebate a tyrant's prideThen stryuing to rebate a tyrants pride,
King Edward IIIE3 I.i.87Then, Edward, here, in spite of all thy lords,Then Edward here in spight of all thy Lords,
King Edward IIIE3 I.i.104Than when reproach with violence is borne.Then when reproch with violence is borne,
King Edward IIIE3 I.i.168Then cheerfully forward, each a several way;Then cheerefully forward ech a seuerall way,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.45Why then, my liege, let me enjoy her jewels.Why then my liege let me enioy her iewels,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.98Hath she been fairer, Warwick, than she is?Hath she been fairer Warwike then she is?
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.107In duty lower than the ground I kneel,In duetie lower then the ground I kneele,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.123Then, dear my liege, now niggard not thy state.Then deare my liege, now niggard not thy state,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.128No farther off than her conspiring eye,No farther off, then her conspyring eye,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.134More than the sun steals mine own light from me.More then the Sunne steales myne owne light from mee:
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.140That more persuades than winning oratory?That more perswads then winning Oratorie.
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.144Than thou wilt grace our inner house withal. Then thou wilt grace our inner house withall,
King Edward IIIE3 I.ii.160More gracious than my terms can, let thee be.More gratious then my tearmes can let thee be,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.6Lo, when she blushed, even then did he look pale,Loe when shee blusht, euen then did he looke pale,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.12Than brick to coral, or live things to dead.Then Bricke to Corrall, or liue things to dead,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.13Why did he then thus counterfeit her looks?Why did he then thus counterfeit her lookes,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.22Then, Scottish wars, farewell! I fear 'twill proveThen Scottish warres farewell, I feare twill prooue
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.26Her voice more silver every word than other,Her voice more siluer euery word then other,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.29‘ Even thus,’ quoth she, ‘ he spake,’ and then spoke broad,Euen thus quoth she, he spake, and then spoke broad,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.31But somewhat better than the Scot could speak. But somewhat better then the Scot could speake,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.32‘ And thus ’ quoth she, and answered then herself,And thus quoth she, and answered then herselfe,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.61Then in the summer arbour sit by me;Then in the sommer arber sit by me,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.74Then, if thou be a poet, move thou so,Then if thou be a Poet moue thou so,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.84‘ Better than beautiful ’ thou must begin.Better then bewtifull thou must begin,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.85Devise for fair a fairer word than fair,Deuise for faire a fairer word then faire,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.103Then mayst thou judge what her condition isThen maist thou iudge what her condition is,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.115Her hair, far softer than the silkworm's twist,Her hair far softor then the silke wormes twist,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.135Hers more than most, mine most and more than more;Hers more then most, myne most, and more then more,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.136Hers more to praise than tell the sea by drops,Hers more to praise then tell the sea by drops,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.137Nay, more than drop the massy earth by sands,Nay more then drop the massie earth by sands,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.139Then wherefore talk'st thou of a periodThen wherefore talkest thou of a period,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.142‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades ’More faire and chast then is the queen of shades:
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.154For I had rather have her chased than chaste.For I had rather haue her chased then chast,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.157Say she hath thrice more splendour than the sun,Say shee hath thrice more splendour then the sun,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.168‘ More fair and chaste than is the queen of shades,More faire and chast then is the louer of shades,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.170.1In constancy than who?In constancie then who,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.170.2‘ than Judith was.’Then Iudith was,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.175I thank thee, then. Thou hast done little ill,I thancke thee then thou hast don litle ill,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.204How near then shall I be to remedy?How neere then shall I be to remedie.
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.207If thou speak'st true, then have I my redress:Yf thou speakst true then haue I my redresse,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.212Then take thyself a little way aside,Then take thy selfe a litel waie a side,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.246I wish no more of thee than thou mayst give,I wish no more of thee then thou maist giue,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.262You break a greater honour than yourself.You breake a greater honor then your selfe,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.264Than to be married: your progenitor,Then to be maried, your progenitour
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.354Were to profane the idol than confound it.Were to prophaine the Idoll then confound it,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.377Then ‘ wife of Salisbury ’ shall I so begin?Then wife of Salisbury shall I so begin:
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.387Hath power to take thine honour; then consentHath power to take thy honor, then consent,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.388To pawn thine honour rather than thy life.To pawne thine honor rather then thy life;
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.419No marvel though the branch be then infected,No maruell though the braunches be then infected,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.423Why then, give sin a passport to offendWhy then giue sinne a pasport to offend,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.434Than the polluted closet of a king;Then the polluted closet of a king,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.438Presents a greater substance than it is;Presents agreater substaunce then it is:
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.452Lilies that fester smell far worse than weeds;Lillies that fester, smel far worse then weeds,
King Edward IIIE3 II.i.456Which then convert to a most heavy curseWhich then conuert to a most heauie curse,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.12Then via for the spacious bounds of France!Then via for the spatious bounds of Fraunce;
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.20Undoubtedly then something is amiss.Vndoubtedly then some thing is a misse.
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.32Then let those foot trudge hence upon those horse,Then let those foote trudge hence vpon those horse,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.43What says the more than Cleopatra's matchKi. What saies the more then Cleopatras match,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.97I go to conquer kings; and shall I not thenI go to conquer kings, andshall I not then
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.113Than to embrace in an unlawful bedThen to embrace in an vnlawfull bed,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.120To speak the more than heavenly word of yeaTo speake the more then heauenly word of yea,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.126Than right for right, and render love for love.Then right for right, and render loue for loue.
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.127Than wrong for wrong, and endless hate for hate.Then wrong for wrong, and endles hate for hate:
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.137Name them, fair Countess, and by heaven I will.Name then faire Countesse, and by heauen I will.
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.151Fairer thou art by far than Hero was,Fairer thou art by farre, then Hero was,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.176When they are gone, then I'll consent to love. – When they are gone, then Ile consent to loue:
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.179Than thy prevention can be in my rescue;Then thy preuention can be in my rescue,
King Edward IIIE3 II.ii.193May better boast of than ever Roman mightMay better boast of then euer Romaine might,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.58Then Bayard-like, blind overweening Ned,Then Bayardlike, blinde ouerweaning Ned,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.87No otherwise then were their sails with wind,No otherwise then were their sailes with winde,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.130Affrights not more than kings when they disposeAffrights not more then kings when they dispose,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.155Then 'gan the day to turn to gloomy night,Then gan the day to turne to gloomy night,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.169Then might ye see the reeling vessels split,Then might ye see the reeling vessels split,
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.178So did the Black Snake of Boulogne, than whichSo did the blacke snake of Bullen, then which
King Edward IIIE3 III.i.185Then rests there nothing but with present speedThen rests there nothing but with present speede,
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.10What then?What then?
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.11What then, quoth you? Why, is't not time to fly,What then quoth you? why ist not time to flie,
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.18And then too late he would redeem his time, And then too late he would redeeme his time,
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.21Than when he sees it doth begin to rainThen when he sees it doth begin to raigne,
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.27Belike you then despair of ill success,Be like you then dispaire of ill successe,
King Edward IIIE3 III.ii.30Yet rather fight than, like unnatural sons,Yet rather fight, then like vnnaturall sonnes,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.7Then, Gobin, for the service thou hast done,Then Gobin for the seruice thou hast done,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.64Thy labour rather to be feared than loved,They labour rather to be feared then loued,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.73Then is thy salutation honey-sweet;Then is thy sallutation hony sweete,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.135Judge then, conspirators, by this descent,Iudge then conspiratours by this descent,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.151Then, to protect your country and your king,Then to protect your Country and your King,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.163Then, Frenchmen, scorn that such should be your lords,Then French men scorne that such should be your Lords
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.210No otherwise than did old Jacob's words,No other wise then did ould Iacobes wordes,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iii.219Then thus our steeled battles shall be ranged:Then this our steelde Battailes shall be rainged,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.1Alarum. Enter a many Frenchmen flying. After them Prince Edward running. Then enter King John and the Duke of LorraineAlarum. Enter a many French men flying. After them Prince Edward runing. Then enter King Iohn and Duke of Loraine.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.2Our number is far greater than our foe's.Our nomber is far greater then our foes,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.11Than by the enemy a thousandfold.Then by the ennimie a thousand fold.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.34Then will he win a world of honour too,Then will he win a world of honor to,
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.37Than one, to comfort our declining age.Then one to comfort our declyning age.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.53Why, then his epitaph is lasting praise.Why then his Ephitaph, is lasting prayse.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.66Than if they were but babes or captive slaves.Then if they were but babes or Captiue slaues.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.67O cruel father! Farewell Edward, then.O cruell Father, farewell Edward then.
King Edward IIIE3 III.iv.96And then new courage made me fresh again,And then new courage made me fresh againe,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.i.32And then thou shalt be set at liberty.And then thou shalt be set at libertie,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.ii.16Far worse than is the quiet sleep of death.Farre worse then is the quiet sleepe of death:
King Edward IIIE3 IV.ii.23But how do you imagine then to speed?But how do you imagine then to speed?
King Edward IIIE3 IV.ii.54Well, then we'll have a pursuivant dispatchedWell then wele haue a Pursiuaunt dispatch,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.ii.67They will so? Then, belike, they may command,They wil so: Then belike they may command,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.ii.85And better some do go to wrack, than all.And better some do go to wrack then all.
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iii.18Why, then I know the extremity, my lord:Why then I know the extremitie my Loid,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iii.54And then I will attend your highness' pleasure.And then I will attend your highnes pleasure.
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iii.70Then think on him that doth not now dissemble,Then thinke on him that doth not now dissemble
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.14His party stronger battled than our whole.His partie stronger battaild then our whole:
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.35Then thus it stands: the valley for our flightThen thus it stands, the valleie for our flight,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.40Death's name is much more mighty than his deeds:Deathes name is much more mightie then his deeds,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.44Are but my handful of so many sands,Then all the world, and call it but a power:
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.49Which briefly is no more indeed than one.Which briefelie is no more indeed then one,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.64And we have one. Then apprehend no odds,And we haue one, then apprehend no ods,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.75Than e'er was buried in our Breton earth.Then ere was buried in our Bryttish earth,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.116Then render back this commonplace of prayerThen render backe this common place of prayer,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.138First bud we, then we blow, and after seed,First bud we, then we blow, and after seed,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.139Then presently we fall; and, as a shadeThen presently we fall, and as a shade
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.141If then we hunt for death, why do we fear it?If then we hunt for death, why do we feare it?
King Edward IIIE3 IV.iv.146If we fear not, then no resolved profferIf wee feare not, then no resolued proffer,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.v.93Then, arms, adieu, and let them fight that list.Then armes adieu, and let them fight that list,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.v.103Dwell'st thou on precedents? Then be it so!Dwelst thou on presidents, then be it so,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.v.107Then, Salisbury, say whither thou art bound.Then Salisburie, say whether thou art bound.
King Edward IIIE3 IV.v.109To Calais, Salisbury? Then to Calais pack,To Callice Salisburie, then to Callice packe,
King Edward IIIE3 IV.vi.4Breathe, then, and to it again. The amazed FrenchBreath then, and too it againe, the amazed French
King Edward IIIE3 IV.vi.51Then charge again. If heaven be not opposed,Then charge againe, if heauen be not opposd
King Edward IIIE3 IV.vii.61Within an easy litter. Then we'll marchWith in an easie Litter, then wele martch.
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.32If it be so, then let our covenant stand:If it be so, then let our couenant stand,
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.59Learn then to reverence Edward as your king.Learne then to reuerence Edw. as your king.
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.69What moved thee, then, to be so obstinateWhat moude thee then to be so obstinate,
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.118More full of honour than his angry sire,More full of honor then his angry syre,
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.123And, sooner than he thinks, we'll be with him,And sooner then he thinkes wele be with him:
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.149Then sound the trumpets' clangour in the air;Then sound the Trumpets clangor in the aire,
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.201Than we did think for, and 'tis so indeed.Then we did thinke for, and tis so in deed,
King Edward IIIE3 V.i.241God willing, then for England we'll be shipped;God willing then for England wele be shipt,
King JohnKJ I.i.21Then take my King's defiance from my mouth,Then take my Kings defiance from my mouth,
King JohnKJ I.i.40Your strong possession much more than your right,Your strong possessiõ much more then your right,
King JohnKJ I.i.58You came not of one mother then, it seems.You came not of one mother then it seemes.
King JohnKJ I.i.114Then, good my liege, let me have what is mine,Then good my Liedge let me haue what is mine,
King JohnKJ I.i.125In sooth he might. Then, if he were my brother's,Insooth he might: then if he were my brothers,
King JohnKJ I.i.130Shall then my father's will be of no forceShal then my fathers Will be of no force,
King JohnKJ I.i.133Than was his will to get me, as I think.Then was his will to get me, as I think.
King JohnKJ I.i.179For France, for France, for it is more than need.For France, for France, for it is more then need.
King JohnKJ I.i.182A foot of honour better than I was,Bast. A foot of Honor better then I was,
King JohnKJ I.i.192Why then I suck my teeth and catechizeWhy then I sucke my teeth, and catechize
King JohnKJ I.i.196And then comes answer like an Absey book:And then comes answer like an Absey booke:
King JohnKJ I.i.249Then, good my mother, let me know my father;Then good my mother, let me know my father,
King JohnKJ II.i.30Salute thee for her king. Till then, fair boy,Salute thee for her King, till then faire boy
King JohnKJ II.i.37Well then, to work! Our cannon shall be bentWell, then to worke our Cannon shall be bent
King JohnKJ II.i.48And then we shall repent each drop of bloodAnd then we shall repent each drop of bloud,
King JohnKJ II.i.54Then turn your forces from this paltry siegeThen turne your forces from this paltry siege,
King JohnKJ II.i.73Than now the English bottoms have waft o'erThen now the English bottomes haue waft o're,
King JohnKJ II.i.83Let them be welcome then. We are prepared!Let them be welcome then, we are prepar'd.
King JohnKJ II.i.107How comes it then that thou art called a king,How comes it then that thou art call'd a King,
King JohnKJ II.i.127Than thou and John in manners – being as likeThen thou and Iohn, in manners being as like,
King JohnKJ II.i.158Than e'er the coward hand of France can win.Then ere the coward hand of France can win;
King JohnKJ II.i.244Than the constraint of hospitable zealThen the constraint of hospitable zeale,
King JohnKJ II.i.246Religiously provokes. Be pleased thenReligiously prouokes. Be pleased then
King JohnKJ II.i.249And then our arms, like to a muzzled bear,And then our Armes, like to a muzled Beare,
King JohnKJ II.i.263Then tell us, shall your city call us lordThen tell vs, Shall your Citie call vs Lord,
King JohnKJ II.i.269Acknowledge then the King, and let me in.Acknowledge then the King, and let me in.
King JohnKJ II.i.283Then God forgive the sin of all those soulsThen God forgiue the sinne of all those soules,
King JohnKJ II.i.297Speed then, to take advantage of the field.Speed then to take aduantage of the field.
King JohnKJ II.i.342In this hot trial, more than we of France;In this hot triall more then we of France,
King JohnKJ II.i.359Then let confusion of one part confirmThen let confusion of one part confirm
King JohnKJ II.i.360The other's peace. Till then, blows, blood, and death!The others peace: till then, blowes, blood, and death.
King JohnKJ II.i.368A greater power then we denies all this.A greater powre then We denies all this,
King JohnKJ II.i.391Then, in a moment, Fortune shall cull forthThen in a moment Fortune shall cull forth
King JohnKJ II.i.400Then after fight who shall be king of it?Then after fight who shall be king of it?
King JohnKJ II.i.406Why, then defy each other, and pell-mellWhy then defie each other, and pell-mell,
King JohnKJ II.i.427Where should he find it fairer than in Blanche?Where should he finde it fairer, then in Blanch:
King JohnKJ II.i.429Where should he find it purer than in Blanche?Where should he finde it purer then in Blanch?
King JohnKJ II.i.431Whose veins bound richer blood than Lady Blanche?Whose veines bound richer blood then Lady Blanch?
King JohnKJ II.i.446This union shall do more than battery canThis Vnion shall do more then batterie can
King JohnKJ II.i.448With swifter spleen than powder can enforce,With swifter spleene then powder can enforce
King JohnKJ II.i.465But buffets better than a fist of France.But buffets better then a fist of France:
King JohnKJ II.i.518Than this: that nothing do I see in you,Then this, that nothing do I see in you,
King JohnKJ II.i.524Speak then, Prince Dauphin. Can you love this lady?Speake then Prince Dolphin, can you loue this Ladie?
King JohnKJ II.i.527Then do I give Volquessen, Touraine, Maine,Then I doe giue Volquessen, Toraine, Maine,
King JohnKJ II.i.595And being rich, my virtue then shall beAnd being rich, my vertue then shall be,
King JohnKJ III.i.25Then speak again – not all thy former tale,Then speake againe, not all thy former tale,
King JohnKJ III.i.34Lewis marry Blanche! O boy, then where art thou?Lewes marry Blaunch? O boy, then where art thou?
King JohnKJ III.i.48I would not care, I then would be content,I would not care, I then would be content,
King JohnKJ III.i.49For then I should not love thee; no, nor thouFor then I should not loue thee: no, nor thou
King JohnKJ III.i.172Then, by the lawful power that I have,Then by the lawfull power that I haue,
King JohnKJ III.i.215O then, tread down my need, and faith mounts up;O then tread downe my need, and faith mounts vp,
King JohnKJ III.i.234No longer than we well could wash our handsNo longer then we well could wash our hands,
King JohnKJ III.i.251Some gentle order, and then we shall be blessedSome gentle order, and then we shall be blest
King JohnKJ III.i.261Than keep in peace that hand which thou dost hold.Then keepe in peace that hand which thou dost hold.
King JohnKJ III.i.273The truth is then most done not doing it.The truth is then most done not doing it:
King JohnKJ III.i.291Than arm thy constant and thy nobler partsThen arme thy constant and thy nobler parts
King JohnKJ III.i.294If thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then knowIf thou vouchsafe them. But if not, then know
King JohnKJ III.i.314Be stronger with thee than the name of wife?Be stronger with thee, then the name of wife?
King JohnKJ III.i.325Is it as he will? Well then, France shall rue.Is it as he will? well then, France shall rue.
King JohnKJ III.i.347No more than he that threats. To arms let's hie!No more then he that threats. To Arms le'ts hie.
King JohnKJ III.iii.52Then, in despite of brooded watchful day,Then, in despight of brooded watchfull day,
King JohnKJ III.iv.39Then with a passion would I shake the world,Then with a passion would I shake the world,
King JohnKJ III.iv.49For then 'tis like I should forget myself!For then 'tis like I should forget my selfe:
King JohnKJ III.iv.98Then, have I reason to be fond of grief?Then, haue I reason to be fond of griefe?
King JohnKJ III.iv.100I could give better comfort than you do.I could giue better comfort then you doe.
King JohnKJ III.iv.139That John may stand, then Arthur needs must fall.That Iohn may stand, then Arthur needs must fall,
King JohnKJ III.iv.143May then make all the claim that Arthur did.May then make all the claime that Arthur did.
King JohnKJ III.iv.164Even at that news he dies; and then the heartsEuen at that newes he dies: and then the hearts
King JohnKJ III.iv.171Than I have named! The bastard FaulconbridgeThen I haue nam'd. The Bastard Falconbridge
King JohnKJ IV.i.31I warrant I love you more than you do me.I warrant I loue you more then you do me.
King JohnKJ IV.i.56Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes – Why then you must. Will you put out mine eyes?
King JohnKJ IV.i.67Are you more stubborn-hard than hammered iron?Are you more stubborne hard, then hammer'd Iron?
King JohnKJ IV.i.86Alas, I then have chid away my friend!Alas, I then haue chid away my friend,
King JohnKJ IV.i.94Then feeling what small things are boisterous there,Then feeling what small things are boysterous there,
King JohnKJ IV.ii.28When workmen strive to do better than well,When Workemen striue to do better then wel,
King JohnKJ IV.ii.34Than did the fault before it was so patched.Then did the fault before it was so patch'd.
King JohnKJ IV.ii.42And more, more strong, when lesser is my fear,And more, more strong, then lesser is my feare
King JohnKJ IV.ii.47Then I, as one that am the tongue of theseThen I, as one that am the tongue of these
King JohnKJ IV.ii.56Why then your fears, which, as they say, attendWhy then your feares, which (as they say) attend
King JohnKJ IV.ii.65Than whereupon our weal, on you depending,Then, whereupon our weale on you depending,
King JohnKJ IV.ii.128How wildly then walks my estate in France!How wildely then walkes my Estate in France?
King JohnKJ IV.ii.136Then let the worst unheard fall on your bead.Then let the worst vn-heard, fall on your head.
King JohnKJ IV.ii.214More upon humour than advised respect.More vpon humor, then aduis'd respect.
King JohnKJ IV.ii.217Is to be made, then shall this hand and sealIs to be made, then shall this hand and Seale
King JohnKJ IV.ii.259Than to be butcher of an innocent child.Then to be butcher of an innocent childe.
King JohnKJ IV.ii.266Presented thee more hideous than thou art.Presented thee more hideous then thou art.
King JohnKJ IV.iii.17Is much more general than these lines import.Is much more generall, then these lines import.
King JohnKJ IV.iii.18Tomorrow morning let us meet him then.To morrow morning let vs meete him then.
King JohnKJ IV.iii.19Or rather then set forward; for 'twill beOr rather then set forward, for 'twill be
King JohnKJ IV.iii.122Thou art more deep damned than Prince Lucifer;Thou art more deepe damn'd then Prince Lucifer:
King JohnKJ V.i.14Then pause not, for the present time's so sick,Then pause not: for the present time's so sicke,
King JohnKJ V.i.78Away, then, with good courage! Yet, I know,Away then with good courage: yet I know
King JohnKJ V.ii.52Than had I seen the vaulty top of heavenThen had I seene the vaultie top of heauen
King JohnKJ V.ii.58Nor met with fortune other than at feasts,Nor met with Fortune, other then at feasts,
King JohnKJ V.ii.77And be no further harmful than in show.And be no further harmefull then in shewe.
King JohnKJ V.ii.175Whom he hath used rather for sport than need – Whom he hath vs'd rather for sport, then neede)
King JohnKJ V.iv.28Why should I then be false, since it is trueWhy should I then be false, since it is true
King JohnKJ V.vi.18.2Brief, then; and what's the news?Brcefe then: and what's the newes?
King JohnKJ V.vi.27Than if you had at leisure known of this.Then if you had at leisure knowne of this.
King JohnKJ V.vii.12Than when you left him. Even now he sung.Then when you left him; euen now he sung.
King JohnKJ V.vii.57And then all this thou seest is but a clodAnd then all this thou seest, is but a clod,
King JohnKJ V.vii.72And then my soul shall wait on thee to heaven,And then my soule shall waite on thee to heauen,
King JohnKJ V.vii.81It seems you know not, then, so much as we.It seemes you know not then so much as we,
King JohnKJ V.vii.100.2Thither shall it then.Thither shall it then,
King LearKL I.i.2Albany than Cornwall.Albany, then Cornwall.
King LearKL I.i.19year elder than this, who yet is no dearer in my account.yeere elder then this; who, yet is no deerer in my account,
King LearKL I.i.55Sir, I love you more than word can wield the matter,Sir, I loue you more then word can weild ye matter,
King LearKL I.i.56Dearer than eyesight, space, and liberty,Deerer then eye-sight, space, and libertie,
King LearKL I.i.58No less than life, with grace, health, beauty, honour,No lesse then life, with grace, health, beauty, honor:
King LearKL I.i.76.2Then poor Cordelia!Then poore Cordelia,
King LearKL I.i.78More ponderous than my tongue.More ponderous then my tongue.
King LearKL I.i.82Than that conferred on Gonerill. – Now, our joy,Then that conferr'd on Gonerill. Now our Ioy,
King LearKL I.i.86A third more opulent than your sisters'? Speak!A third, more opilent then your Sisters? speake.
King LearKL I.i.108Let it be so! Thy truth then be thy dower!Let it be so, thy truth then be thy dowre:
King LearKL I.i.194I crave no more than hath your highness offered,I craue no more then hath your Highnesse offer'd,
King LearKL I.i.207Then leave her, sir, for, by the power that made me,Then leaue her sir, for by the powre that made me,
King LearKL I.i.212Than on a wretch whom Nature is ashamedThen on a wretch whom Nature is asham'd
King LearKL I.i.234Hadst not been born than not t' have pleased me better.Not beene borne, then not t haue pleas'd me better.
King LearKL I.i.246I am sorry then you have so lost a fatherI am sorry then you haue so lost a Father,
King LearKL I.i.295but rash. Then must we look from his age to receive notbut rash, then must we looke from his age, to receiue not
King LearKL I.ii.13Than doth within a dull, stale, tired bedThen doth within a dull stale tyred bed
King LearKL I.ii.15Got 'tween asleep and wake? Well then,Got 'tweene a sleepe, and wake? Well then,
King LearKL I.ii.33No? What needed then that terrible dispatchNo? what needed then that terrible dispatch
King LearKL I.ii.78villain! worse than brutish! Go, sirrah, seek him; I'llVillaine; worse then brutish: Go sirrah, seeke him: Ile
King LearKL I.ii.93without any further delay than this very evening.without any further delay, then this very Euening.
King LearKL I.iv.13I do profess to be no less than I seem: to serve himI do professe to be no lesse then I seeme; to serue him
King LearKL I.iv.69curiosity than as a very pretence and purpose ofcuriositie, then as a very pretence and purpose of
King LearKL I.iv.117Have more than thou showest,Haue more then thou showest,
King LearKL I.iv.118Speak less than thou knowest,Speake lesse then thou knowest,
King LearKL I.iv.119Lend less than thou owest,Lend lesse then thou owest,
King LearKL I.iv.120Ride more than thou goest,Ride more then thou goest,
King LearKL I.iv.121Learn more than thou trowest,Learne more then thou trowest,
King LearKL I.iv.122Set less than thou throwest;Set lesse then thou throwest;
King LearKL I.iv.126Than two tens to a score.Then two tens to a score.
King LearKL I.iv.128Then 'tis like the breath of an unfee'd lawyer: youThen 'tis like the breath of an vnfeed Lawyer, you
King LearKL I.iv.171Then they for sudden joy did weep,then they / For sodaine ioy did weepe,
King LearKL I.iv.182o' thing than a fool. And yet I would not be thee, nuncle.o'thing then a foole, and yet I would not be thee Nunckle,
King LearKL I.iv.189figure. I am better than thou art now; I am a fool; thoufigure, I am better then thou art now, I am a Foole, thou
King LearKL I.iv.208Which else were shame, that then necessityWhich else were shame, that then necessitie
King LearKL I.iv.242Than a graced palace. The shame itself doth speakThen a grac'd Pallace. The shame it selfe doth speake
King LearKL I.iv.243For instant remedy. Be then desired,For instant remedy. Be then desir'd
King LearKL I.iv.258.1Than the sea-monster!Then the Sea-monster.
King LearKL I.iv.285How sharper than a serpent's tooth it isHow sharper then a Serpents tooth it is,
King LearKL I.iv.311You, sir, more knave than fool, after your master!You Sir, more Knaue then Foole, after your Master.
King LearKL I.iv.325.2Safer than trust too far.Safer then trust too farre;
King LearKL I.iv.341Than praised for harmful mildness.Then prai'sd for harmefull mildnesse.
King LearKL I.iv.344Nay thenNay then----
King LearKL I.v.3you know than comes from her demand out of the letter.you know, then comes from her demand out of the Letter,
King LearKL I.v.11Then I prithee be merry. Thy wit shall not goThen I prythee be merry, thy wit shall not go
King LearKL I.v.34seven stars are no more than seven is a pretty reason.seuen Starres are no mo then seuen, is a pretty reason.
King LearKL II.i.13You may do, then, in time. Fare you well, sir.You may do then in time, / Fare you well Sir.
King LearKL II.i.35.1Do more than this in sport.Do more then this in sport;
King LearKL II.i.97No marvel then though he were ill affected.No maruaile then, though he were ill affected,
King LearKL II.ii.7Why then, I care not for thee.Why then I care not for thee.
King LearKL II.ii.86Than I and such a knave.Then I, and such a knaue.
King LearKL II.ii.92Than stands on any shoulder that I seeThen stands on any shoulder that I see
King LearKL II.ii.101Than twenty silly-ducking observantsThen twenty silly-ducking obseruants,
King LearKL II.iv.10legs, then he wears wooden nether-stocks.legs, then he weares wodden nether-stocks.
King LearKL II.iv.22They could not, would not do't; 'tis worse than murderThey could not, would not do't: 'tis worse then murther,
King LearKL II.iv.41Having more man than wit about me, drew.Hauing more man then wit about me, drew;
King LearKL II.iv.135.1Than she to scant her duty.Then she to scant her dutie.
King LearKL II.iv.145Better than you yourself. Therefore I pray youBetter then you your selfe: therefore I pray you,
King LearKL II.iv.199Dismissing half your train, come then to me.Dismissing halfe your traine, come then to me,
King LearKL II.iv.240Why not, my lord? If then they chanced to slack ye,Why not my Lord? / If then they chanc'd to slacke ye,
King LearKL II.iv.261Allow not nature more than nature needs – Allow not Nature, more then Nature needs:
King LearKL III.i.45Than my out-wall, open this purse and takeThen my out-wall; open this Purse, and take
King LearKL III.i.52Few words, but to effect more than all yet:Few words, but to effect more then all yet;
King LearKL III.ii.11than this rain-water out o' door. Good nuncle, in; ask thythen this Rain-water out o' doore. Good Nunkle, in, aske thy
King LearKL III.ii.18You owe me no subscription; then let fallYou owe me no subscription. Then let fall
King LearKL III.ii.60.1More sinned against than sinning.More sinn'd against, then sinning.
King LearKL III.ii.64More harder than the stones whereof 'tis raised;(More harder then the stones whereof 'tis rais'd,
King LearKL III.ii.81When priests are more in word than matter,When Priests are more in word, then matter;
King LearKL III.ii.85Then shall the realm of AlbionThen shal the Realme of Albion,
King LearKL III.ii.93Then comes the time, who lives to see't,Then comes the time, who liues to see't,
King LearKL III.iii.8between the Dukes; and a worse matter than that. Ibetweene the Dukes, and a worsse matter then that: I
King LearKL III.iii.22That which my father loses – no less than all.That which my Father looses: no lesse then all,
King LearKL III.iv.27Nay, get thee in. I'll pray and then I'll sleep.Nay get thee in; Ile pray, and then Ile sleepe.
King LearKL III.iv.98Thou wert better in a grave than to answer with thyThou wert better in a Graue, then to answere with thy
King LearKL III.iv.100more than this? Consider him well. Thou owest themore then this? Consider him well. Thou ow'st the
King LearKL III.vi.1Here is better than the open air. Take itHeere is better then the open ayre,t ake it
King LearKL III.vi.75Then let them anatomize Regan, see what breedsThen let them Anatomize Regan: See what breeds
King LearKL III.vi.104But then the mind much sufferance doth o'erskip
King LearKL III.vii.74.1Than now to bid you hold.Then now to bid you hold.
King LearKL III.vii.78Nay then, come on, and take the chance of anger.Nay then come on, and take the chance of anger.
King LearKL III.vii.90O my follies! Then Edgar was abused.O my Follies! then Edgar was abus'd,
King LearKL IV.i.2Than still contemned and flattered. To be worst,Then still contemn'd and flatter'd, to be worst:
King LearKL IV.i.6The worst returns to laughter. Welcome, then,The worst returnes to laughter. Welcome then,
King LearKL IV.i.26.1I am worse than e'er I was.I am worse then ere I was.
King LearKL IV.i.34Came then into my mind, and yet my mindCame then into my minde, and yet my minde
King LearKL IV.i.35Was then scarce friends with him. I have heard more since.Was then scarse Friends with him. / I haue heard more since:
King LearKL IV.i.41Then prithee get thee away. If for my sakeGet thee away: If for my sake
King LearKL IV.ii.8When I informed him, then he called me sotWhen I inform'd him, then he call'd me Sot,
King LearKL IV.ii.11.2Then shall you go no further.Then shall you go no further.
King LearKL IV.iii.12And now and then an ample tear trilled down
King LearKL IV.iii.15.2O, then it moved her?
King LearKL IV.iii.31And clamour moistened; then away she started
King LearKL IV.v.32Than for your lady's. You may gather more.Then for your Ladies: You may gather more:
King LearKL IV.vi.5Why then your other senses grow imperfectWhy then your other Senses grow imperfect
King LearKL IV.vi.8In better phrase and matter than thou didst.In better phrase, and matter then thou did'st.
King LearKL IV.vi.16Methinks he seems no bigger than his head.Me thinkes he seemes no bigger then his head.
King LearKL IV.vi.115Was kinder to his father than my daughterswas kinder to his Father, / Then my Daughters
King LearKL IV.vi.188Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill!Then kill, kill, kill, kill, kill, kill.
King LearKL IV.vi.202Then there's life in't. Nay, and you get it you shallThen there's life in't. Come, and you get it, / You shall
King LearKL IV.vi.265 return the conqueror. Then am I the prisoner, and his bedreturne the Conqueror, then am I the Prisoner, and his bed,
King LearKL IV.vii.12.1Then be't so, my good lord.Then be't so my good Lord:
King LearKL V.i.8Tell me but truly – but then speak the truth – Tell me but truly, but then speake the truth,
King LearKL V.i.31.2Let's then determineLet's then determine
King LearKL V.i.62Her husband being alive. Now then, we'll useHer husband being aliue. Now then, wee'l vse
King LearKL V.iii.69.1More than in your addition.More then in your addition.
King LearKL V.iii.96.1Than I have here proclaimed thee.Then I haue heere proclaim'd thee.
King LearKL V.iii.154Thou worse than any name, read thine own evil.Thou worse then any name, reade thine owne euill:
King LearKL V.iii.165I am no less in blood than thou art, Edmund;I am no lesse in blood then thou art Edmond,
King LearKL V.iii.184Rather than die at once – taught me to shiftRather then die at once) taught me to shift
King LearKL V.iii.208Shunned my abhorred society; but then finding
King LearKL V.iii.215Began to crack. Twice then the trumpets sounded,
King LearKL V.iii.261.1Why, then she lives.Why then she liues.
King LearKL V.iii.300Have more than merited. All friends shall tasteHaue more then merited. All Friends shall
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.3And then grace us in the disgrace of death;And then grace vs in the disgrace of death:
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.42And then to sleep but three hours in the night,And then to sleepe but three houres in the night,
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.54By yea and nay, sir, then I swore in jest.By yea and nay sir, than I swore in iest.
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.59Come on then, I will swear to study so,Come on then, I will sweare to studie so,
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.91Than those that walk and wot not what they are.Then those that walke and wot not what they are.
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.99.2Something then in rhyme.Something then in rime.
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.106Than wish a snow in May's new-fangled shows,Then wish a Snow in Mayes new fangled showes:
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.113Than for that angel knowledge you can say,Then for that Angell knowledge you can say,
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.235park. Then for the place where – where, I mean, I didParke. Then for the place Where? where I meane I did
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.i.301Affliction may one day smile again, and till then sitaffliction may one day smile againe, and vntill then sit
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.ii.45Then I am sure you know how much the gross sumThen I am sure you know how much the grosse summe
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.ii.47It doth amount to one more than two.It doth amount to one more then two.
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.ii.98Then if she fear or be to blame,Then if she feare, or be to blame,
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.ii.114To be whipped – and yet a better love thanTo bee whip'd: and yet a better loue then
Love's Labour's LostLLL I.ii.145I am more bound to you than your fellows, forI am more bound to you then your fellowes, for
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.8Than Aquitaine, a dowry for a queen.Then Aquitaine, a Dowrie for a Queene.
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.18Than you much willing to be counted wiseThen you much wiling to be counted wise,
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.87Than seek a dispensation for his oath,Then seeke a dispensation for his oath:
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.96I will be welcome, then. Conduct me thither.I wil be welcome then, Conduct me thither.
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.138If then the King your father will restoreIf then the King your father will restore
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.149Than Aquitaine, so gelded as it is.Then Aquitane, so guelded as it is.
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.242Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim.Then was Venus like her mother, for her father is but grim.
Love's Labour's LostLLL II.i.243.3What then, do you see?What then, do you see?
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.63.2Thump then, and I flee.Thump then, and I flee.
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.105Then called you for the l'envoy.Then cal'd you for the Lenuoy.
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.107argument in; then the boy's fat l'envoy, the goose thatargument in: / Then the Boyes fat Lenuoy, the Goose that
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.139than French crown. I will never buy and sell out ofthen a French-Crowne. I will neuer buy and sell out of
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.146Why then, three-farthing worth of silk.O, Why then three farthings worth of Silke.
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.162When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name,When tongues speak sweetly, then they name her name,
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.166Guerdon, O sweet guerdon! Better thanGardon, O sweete gardon, better then
Love's Labour's LostLLL III.i.175Than whom no mortal so magnificent!Then whom no mortall so magnificent,
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.7Then, forester, my friend, where is the bushThen Forrester my friend, Where is the Bush
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.14What, what? First praise me, and again say no?What, what? First praise me, & then again say no.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.19Fair payment for foul words is more than due.Faire paiment for foule words, is more then due.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.25And shooting well is then accounted ill.And shooting well, is then accounted ill:
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.28If wounding, then it was to show my skill,If wounding, then it was to shew my skill,
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.29That more for praise than purpose meant to kill.That more for praise, then purpose meant to kill.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.65thou art lovely. More fairer than fair, beautiful thanthou art louely: more fairer then faire, beautifull then
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.66beauteous, truer than truth itself, have commiseration onbeautious, truer then truth it selfe: haue comiseration on
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.93But if thou strive, poor soul, what art thou then?But if thou striue (poore soule) what art thou then?
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.115.1Well then, I am the shooter.Well then, I am the shooter.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.136An if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in.And if my hand be out, then belike your hand is in.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.i.137Then will she get the upshoot by cleaving the pin.Then will shee get the vpshoot by cleauing the is in.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.ii.29Which we of taste and feeling are – for those parts that do fructify in us more than he.which we taste and feeling, are for those parts that doe fructifie in vs more then he.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.ii.59The dogs did yell; put ‘ L ’ to sore, then sorel jumps from thicket;The Dogges did yell, put ell to Sore, then Sorell iumps from thicket:
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.ii.61If sore be sore, then ‘ L ’ to sore makes fifty sores o' sorel:If Sore be sore, then ell to Sore, makes fiftie sores O sorell:
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.36But do not love thyself; then thou will keepBut doe not loue thy selfe, then thou wilt keepe
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.67Then thou, fair sun, which on my earth dost shine,Then thou faire Sun, which on my earth doest shine,
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.69If broken, then, it is no fault of mine;If broken then, it is no fault of mine:
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.89Ay, as some days; but then no sun must shine.I as some daies, but then no sunne must shine.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.95A fever in your blood? Why, then incisionA Feuer in your bloud, why then incision
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.230My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne.My eyes are then no eyes, nor I Berowne.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.239She passes praise; then praise too short doth blot.She passes prayse, then prayse too short doth blot.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.273No devil will fright thee then so much as she.No Diuell will fright thee then so much as shee.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.278O, vile! Then, as she goes, what upward liesO vile, then as she goes what vpward lyes?
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.282Then leave this chat, and, good Berowne, now proveThen leaue this chat, & good Berown now proue
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.287.2'Tis more than need.O 'tis more then neede.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.288Have at you then, affection's men-at-arms!Haue at you then affections men at armes,
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.293And abstinence engenders maladies.And abstinence ingenders maladies. / And where that you haue vow'd to studie (Lords) / In that each of you haue forsworne his Booke. / Can you still dreame and pore, and thereon looke. / For when would you my Lord, or you, or you, / Haue found the ground of studies excellence, / Without the beauty of a womans face; / From womens eyes this doctrine I deriue, / They are the Ground, the Bookes, the Achadems, / From whence doth spring the true Promethean fire. / Why, vniuersall plodding poysons vp / The nimble spirits in the arteries, / As motion and long during action tyres / The sinnowy vigour of the trauailer. / Now for not looking on a womans face, / You haue in that forsworne the vse of eyes: / And studie too, the causer of your vow. / For where is any Author in the world, / Teaches such beauty as a womans eye: / Learning is but an adiunct to our selfe, / And where we are, our Learning likewise is. / Then when our selues we see in Ladies eyes, / With our selues. / Doe we not likewise see our learning there?
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.314Than are the tender horns of cockled snails.Then are the tender hornes of Cockled Snayles.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.324O, then his lines would ravish savage earsO then his lines would rauish sauage eares,
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.331Then fools you were these women to forswear,Then fooles you were these women to forsweare:
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.342Saint Cupid, then! And, soldiers, to the field!Saint Cupid then, and Souldiers to the field.
Love's Labour's LostLLL IV.iii.351Then homeward every man attach the handThen homeward euery man attach the hand
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.i.17finer than the staple of his argument. I abhor suchfiner then the staple of his argument. I abhor such
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.i.42than a flap-dragon.then a flapdragon.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.131And then the King will court thee for his dear.And then the King will court thee for his Deare:
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.136Come on, then, wear the favours most in sight.Come on then, weare the fauours most in sight.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.159Beauties no richer than rich taffeta.Beauties no richer then rich Taffata.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.190The measure then of one is easily told.The measure then of one is easlie told.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.209Then in our measure vouchsafe but one change.Then in our measure, vouchsafe but one change.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.211Play music then! Nay, you must do it soon.Play musicke then: nay you must doe it soone.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.220.1Why take we hands then?Why take you hands then?
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.226Then cannot we be bought; and so adieu –Then cannot we be bought: and so adue,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.229.1In private then.In priuate then.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.232Nay then, two treys, an if you grow so nice,Nay then two treyes, an if you grow so nice
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.253Then die a calf before your horns do grow.Then die a Calfe before your horns do grow.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.255Bleat softly then. The butcher hears you cry.Bleat softly then, the Butcher heares you cry.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.258Cutting a smaller hair than may be seen;Cutting a smaller haire then may be seene,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.261Fleeter than arrows, bullets, wind, thought, swifter things.Fleeter then arrows, bullets wind, thoght, swifter things
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.342Then wish me better; I will give you leave.Then wish me better, I wil giue you leaue.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.344To lead you to our court. Vouchsafe it then.To leade you to our Court, vouchsafe it then.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.387There, then, that visor: that superfluous caseThere, then, that vizard, that superfluous case,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.435.2When you then were here,When you then were heere,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.437That more than all the world I did respect her.That more then all the world I did respect her
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.468The ladies did change favours, and then we,The Ladies did change Fauours; and then we
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.511To have one show worse than the King's and his company.to haue one shew worse then the Kings and his companie.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.677Then shall Hector be whipped for JaquenettaThen shall Hector be whipt for Iaquenetta
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.682Greater than ‘ Great ’! Great, great, greatGreater then great, great, great, great
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.689than will sup a flea.then will sup a Flea.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.777But more devout than this in our respectsBut more deuout then these are our respects
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.780Our letters, madam, showed much more than jest.Our letters Madam, shew'd much more then iest.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.799Then, at the expiration of the year,Then at the expiration of the yeare,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.808If this, or more than this, I would deny,If this, or more then this, I would denie,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.811Hence euer then, my heart is in thy brest. / Ber. And what to me my Loue? and what to me? / Ros. You must be purged too, your sins are rack'd. / You are attaint with faults and periurie: / Therefore if you my fauor meane to get, / A tweluemonth shall you spend, and neuer rest, / But seeke the wearie beds of people sicke.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.819Then, if I have much love, I'll give you some.Then if I haue much loue, Ile giue you some.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.820I'll serve thee true and faithfully till then.Ile serue thee true and faithfully till then.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.852Of him that makes it. Then, if sickly ears,Of him that makes it: then, if sickly eares,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.854Will hear your idle scorns, continue then,Will heare your idle scornes; continue then,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.867.1And then 'twill end.And then 'twil end.
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.887The cuckoo then, on every tree,The Cuckow then on euerie tree,
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.896The cuckoo then, on every tree,The Cuckow then on euerie tree
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.906Then nightly sings the staring owl:Then nightly sings the staring Owle
Love's Labour's LostLLL V.ii.915Then nightly sings the staring owl:Then nightly sings the staring Owle,
MacbethMac I.iii.59Speak then to me who neither beg nor fearSpeake then to me, who neyther begge, nor feare
MacbethMac I.iii.74No more than to be Cawdor. Say from whenceNo more then to be Cawdor. Say from whence
MacbethMac I.iii.137Are less than horrible imaginings.Are lesse then horrible Imaginings:
MacbethMac I.iii.156Till then, enough! – Come, friends.Till then enough: Come friends.
MacbethMac I.iv.22‘ More is thy due than more than all can pay.’More is thy due, then more then all can pay.
MacbethMac I.v.2by the perfectest report they have more in them than mortalby the perfect'st report, they haue more in them, then mortall
MacbethMac I.v.23Than wishest should be undone. Hie thee hitherThen wishest should be vndone. High thee hither,
MacbethMac I.v.35.1Than would make up his message.Then would make vp his Message.
MacbethMac I.v.53Greater than both by the all-hail hereafter!Greater then both, by the all-haile hereafter,
MacbethMac I.vi.15In every point twice done and then done doubleIn euery point twice done, and then done double,
MacbethMac I.vii.1.2with dishes and service over the stage. Then enterwith Dishes and Seruice ouer the Stage. Then enter
MacbethMac I.vii.1If it were done when 'tis done, then 'twere wellIf it were done, when 'tis done, then 'twer well,
MacbethMac I.vii.14Strong both against the deed; then, as his host,Strong both against the Deed: Then, as his Host,
MacbethMac I.vii.47.2What beast was't thenWhat Beast was't then
MacbethMac I.vii.49When you durst do it, then you were a man;When you durst do it, then you were a man:
MacbethMac I.vii.50And to be more than what you were, you wouldAnd to be more then what you were, you would
MacbethMac I.vii.52Did then adhere, and yet you would make both.Did then adhere, and yet you would make both:
MacbethMac II.ii.68How easy is it then! Your constancyHow easie is it then? your Constancie
MacbethMac II.iii.70.1See, and then speak yourselves.See, and then speake your selues:,
MacbethMac II.iv.22Is't known who did this more than bloody deed?Is't known who did this more then bloody deed?
MacbethMac II.iv.29Thine own life's means! – Then 'tis most likeThine owne liues meanes: Then 'tis most like,
MacbethMac II.iv.38Lest our old robes sit easier than our new.Least our old Robes sit easier then our new.
MacbethMac III.i.44.1While then, God be with you!While then, God be with you.
MacbethMac III.i.58And bade them speak to him. Then prophet-like,And bad them speake to him. Then Prophet-like,
MacbethMac III.i.70Rather than so, come fate into the listRather then so, come Fate into the Lyst,
MacbethMac III.i.74.2Well then now,Well then, Now
MacbethMac III.i.136Than is his father's, must embrace the fateThen is his Fathers, must embrace the fate
MacbethMac III.ii.7Than by destruction dwell in doubtful joy.Then by destruction dwell in doubtfull ioy.
MacbethMac III.ii.21Than on the torture of the mind to lieThen on the torture of the Minde to lye
MacbethMac III.ii.40Then be thou jocund. Ere the bat hath flownThen be thou iocund: ere the Bat hath flowne
MacbethMac III.iii.4.2Then stand with us;Then stand with vs:
MacbethMac III.iii.9.2Then 'tis he.Then 'tis hee:
MacbethMac III.iv.13.2'Tis Banquo's then.'Tis Banquo's then.
MacbethMac III.iv.14'Tis better thee without than he within.'Tis better thee without, then he within.
MacbethMac III.iv.20Then comes my fit again. I had else been perfect,Then comes my Fit againe: I had else beene perfect;
MacbethMac III.iv.42.1Than pity for mischance.Then pitty for Mischance.
MacbethMac III.iv.82.1Than such a murder is.Then such a murther is.
MacbethMac III.iv.87Then I'll sit down. Give me some wine; fill full!Then Ile sit downe: Giue me some Wine, fill full:
MacbethMac III.iv.104If trembling I inhabit then, protest meIf trembling I inhabit then, protest mee
MacbethMac IV.i.38Then the charm is firm and good.Then the Charme is firme and good.
MacbethMac IV.i.75More potent than the first.More potent then the first.
MacbethMac IV.i.81Then live Macduff; what need I fear of thee?Then liue Macduffe: what need I feare of thee?
MacbethMac IV.ii.42Then you'll buy 'em to sell again.Then you'l by 'em to sell againe.
MacbethMac IV.ii.56Then the liars and swearers are fools; for there areThen the Liars and Swearers are Fools: for there are
MacbethMac IV.ii.77Accounted dangerous folly. Why then, alas,Accounted dangerous folly. Why then (alas)
MacbethMac IV.iii.47Shall have more vices than it had before,Shall haue more vices then it had before,
MacbethMac IV.iii.48More suffer, and more sundry ways, than ever,More suffer, and more sundry wayes then euer,
MacbethMac IV.iii.66.1Than such a one to reign.Then such an one to reigne.
MacbethMac IV.iii.86Than summer-seeming lust; and it hath beenThen Summer-seeming Lust: and it hath bin
MacbethMac IV.iii.110Oftener upon her knees than on her feet,Oftner vpon her knees, then on her feet,
MacbethMac IV.iii.130No less in truth than life. My first false speakingNo lesse in truth then life. My first false speaking
MacbethMac V.i.35then, 'tis time to do't. – Hell is murky! – Fie, my lord,then 'tis time to doo't: Hell is murky. Fye, my Lord,
MacbethMac V.i.70More needs she the divine than the physician.More needs she the Diuine, then the Physitian:
MacbethMac V.ii.22.2Who then shall blameWho then shall blame
MacbethMac V.iii.7Shall e'er have power upon thee.’ Then fly, false thanes,Shall ere haue power vpon thee. Then fly false Thanes,
MacbethMac V.v.26And then is heard no more. It is a taleAnd then is heard no more. It is a Tale
MacbethMac V.vi.17.1Than any is in hell.Then any is in hell.
MacbethMac V.vi.47.1Than terms can give thee out.Then tearmes can giue thee out.
MacbethMac V.vi.62Then yield thee, coward;Then yeeld thee Coward,
MacbethMac V.vi.82.2Then he is dead?Then he is dead?
MacbethMac V.vi.84Must not be measured by his worth, for thenMust not be measur'd by his worth, for then
MacbethMac V.vi.86.2Why then, God's soldier be he.Why then, Gods Soldier be he:
Measure for MeasureMM I.i.7My strength can give you. Then no more remainsMy strength can giue you: Then no more remaines
Measure for MeasureMM I.ii.2composition with the King of Hungary, why then all thecomposition with the King of Hungary, why then all the
Measure for MeasureMM I.iii.5More grave and wrinkled than the aims and endsMore graue, and wrinkled, then the aimes, and ends
Measure for MeasureMM I.iii.7My holy sir, none better knows than youMy holy Sir, none better knowes then you
Measure for MeasureMM I.iii.27Becomes more mocked than feared, so our decrees,More mock'd, then fear'd: so our Decrees,
Measure for MeasureMM I.iii.34.1Than in Lord Angelo.Then in Lord Angelo.
Measure for MeasureMM I.iii.53Is more to bread than stone. Hence shall we see,Is more to bread then stone: hence shall we see
Measure for MeasureMM I.iv.12Then, if you speak, you must not show your face,Then if you speake, you must not show your face;
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.6Than fall, and bruise to death. Alas, this gentleman,Then fall, and bruise to death: alas, this gentleman
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.21Guiltier than him they try; what's open made to justice,Guiltier then him they try; what's open made to Iustice,
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.102Very well: you being then, if you be remembered,Very well: you being then (if you be remembred)
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.105Why, very well: I telling you then, if you beWhy, very well: I telling you then (if you be
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.110Why, very well thenWhy very well then.
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.127Why, very well then. I hope here be truths.Why very well then: I hope here be truthes.
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.149worst thing about him. Good, then; if his face be theworst thing about him: good then: if his face be the
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.158person than any of us all.person then any of vs all.
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.191Hath she had any more than one husband?Hath she had any more then one husband?
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.196hang then. Get you gone, and let me hear no more ofhang them: get you gon, and let me heare no more of
Measure for MeasureMM II.i.223then. If your worship will take order for the drabs andthen: if your worship will take order for the drabs and
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.42I had a brother then; heaven keep your honour.I had a brother then; heauen keepe your honour.
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.68And you were Isabel; should it then be thus?And you were Isabell: should it then be thus?
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.78And mercy then will breathe within your lips,And mercie then will breathe within your lips
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.86With less respect than we do ministerWith lesse respect then we doe minister
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.101For then I pity those I do not know,For then I pittie those I doe not know,
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.117Than the soft myrtle; but man, proud man,Then the soft Mertill: But man, proud man,
Measure for MeasureMM II.ii.170Than woman's lightness? Having waste ground enough,Then womans lightnesse? hauing waste ground enough,
Measure for MeasureMM II.iii.9I would do more than that, if more were needful.I would do more then that, if more were needfull
Measure for MeasureMM II.iii.15Than die for this.Then dye for this.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iii.26So then it seems your most offenceful actSo then it seemes your most offence full act
Measure for MeasureMM II.iii.28Then was your sin of heavier kind than his.Then was your sin of heauier kinde then his.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.33Than to demand what 'tis. Your brother cannot live.Then to demand what 'tis: your Brother cannot liue.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.51Say you so? Then I shall pose you quickly.Say you so: then I shall poze you quickly.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.56I had rather give my body than my soul.I had rather giue my body, then my soule.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.58.1Stand more for number than accompt.Stand more for number, then for accompt.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.81Than beauty could, displayed. But mark me;Then beauty could displaied: But marke me,
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.104.2Then must your brother die.Then must your brother die.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.107Than that a sister, by redeeming him,Then that a sister, by redeeming him
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.109Were not you then as cruel as the sentenceWere not you then as cruell as the Sentence,
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.116A merriment than a vice.A merriment, then a vice.
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.133Than faults may shake our frames – let me be bold.Then faults may shake our frames) let me be bold;
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.146Which seems a little fouler than it is,Which seemes a little fouler then it is,
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.184Then, Isabel, live chaste, and, brother, die.Then Isabell liue chaste, and brother die;
Measure for MeasureMM II.iv.185More than our brother is our chastity."More then our Brother, is our Chastitie.
Measure for MeasureMM III.i.1So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo?So then you hope of pardon from Lord Angelo?
Measure for MeasureMM III.i.80Than a perpetual honour. Dar'st thou die?Then a perpetuall Honor. Dar'st thou die?
Measure for MeasureMM III.i.129The pendent world; or to be worse than worstThe pendant world: or to be worse then worst
Measure for MeasureMM III.i.192brother die by the law than my son should be unlawfullybrother die by the Law, then my sonne should be vnlawfullie
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.9being richer than innocency, stands for the facing.being richer then Innocency, stands for the facing.
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.63Well, then, imprison him. If imprisonment be theWell, then imprison him: If imprisonment be the
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.77You will not bail me then, sir?You will not baile me then Sir?
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.78Then, Pompey, nor now. What news abroad,Then Pompey, nor now: what newes abroad
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.101How should he be made, then?How should he be made then?
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.225Rather rejoicing to see another merry thanRather reioycing to see another merry, then
Measure for MeasureMM III.ii.254Than by self-offences weighing.Then by selfe-offences weighing.
Measure for MeasureMM IV.i.54Take then this your companion by the hand,Take then this your companion by the hand
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.47is a more penitent trade than your bawd. He dothis a more penitent Trade then your Bawd: he doth
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.73.3They will then, ere't be long.They will then er't be long.
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.81Which he corrects, then were he tyrannous,Which he corrects, then were he tirrannous,
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.122than we must yet deliver. Thus fail not to do your office,then we must yet deliuer. Thus faile not to doe your Office,
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.155to the law than Angelo who hath sentenced him. To maketo the Law, then Angelo who hath sentenc'd him. To make
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.174upon this, more than thanks and good fortune, by thevpon this, more then thankes and good fortune, by the
Measure for MeasureMM IV.ii.184persuasion can with ease attempt you, I will go further thanperswasion, can with ease attempt you, I wil go further then
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.7ready money. Marry, then ginger was not much in request,readie money: marrie then, Ginger was not much in request,
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.8for the old women were all dead. Then is therefor the olde Women were all dead. Then is there
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.11which now peaches him a beggar. Then have we herewhich now peaches him a beggar. Then haue we heere,
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.136This letter then to Friar Peter give.This Letter then to Friar Peter giue,
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.160He's a better woodman than thou tak'st him for.he's a better woodman then thou tak'st him for.
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iii.171Sir, your company is fairer than honest. Rest youSir your company is fairer then honest, rest you
Measure for MeasureMM IV.iv.12which shall then have no power to stand against us.which shall then haue no power to stand against vs.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.44Than this is all as true as it is strange.Then this is all as true, as it is strange;
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.49There is another comfort than this world,There is another comfort, then this world,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.74.1As then the messenger – As then the Messenger.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.79.2I wish you now, then.I wish you now then,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.81A business for yourself, pray heaven you thenA businesse for your selfe: pray heauen you then
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.115Then, O you blessed ministers above,Then oh you blessed Ministers aboue
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.175A widow, then?A Widow then?
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.177Why, you are nothing then. Neither maid, widow,Why you are nothing then: neither Maid, Widow,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.188He was drunk, then, my lord. It can be no better.He was drunk then, my Lord, it can be no better.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.198.1Charges she more than me?Charges she moe then me?
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.272Not better than he, by her own report.Not better then he, by her owne report.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.298Then is your cause gone too. The Duke's unjust,Then is your cause gone too: The Duke's vniust,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.307To call him villain? And then to glance from himTo call him villaine; and then to glance from him,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.312Dare no more stretch this finger of mine than heNo more stretch this finger of mine, then he
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.332fool, and a coward, as you then reported him to be?foole, and a coward, as you then reported him to be?
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.357This may prove worse than hanging.This may proue worse then hanging.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.364I should be guiltier than my guiltinessI should be guiltier then my guiltinesse,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.367Hath looked upon my passes. Then, good prince,Hath look'd vpon my passes. Then good Prince,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.370Immediate sentence, then, and sequent deathImmediate sentence then, and sequent death,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.378.1Than at the strangeness of it.Then at the strangenesse of it.
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.379Your friar is now your prince. As I was thenYour Frier is now your Prince: As I was then
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.390Than let him so be lost. O most kind maid,Then let him so be lost: oh most kinde Maid,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.395Than that which lives to fear. Make it your comfort,Then that which liues to feare: make it your comfort,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.409Then, Angelo, thy faults thus manifested,Then Angelo, thy fault's thus manifested;
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.473That I crave death more willingly than mercy.That I craue death more willingly then mercy,
Measure for MeasureMM V.i.478That apprehends no further than this world,That apprehends no further then this world,
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.28Vailing her high-top lower than her ribsVailing her high top lower then her ribs
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.46.1Why then you are in love.Why then you are in loue.
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.47Not in love neither? Then let us say you are sadNot in loue neither: then let vs say you are sad
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.82Than my heart cool with mortifying groans.Then my heart coole with mortifying grones.
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.105Well, we will leave you then till dinner-time.Well, we will leaue you then till dinner time.
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.115more than any man in all Venice. His reasons are as twomore then any man in all Venice, his reasons are two
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.125Than my faint means would grant continuance.Then my faint meanes would grant continuance:
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.157Than if you had made waste of all I have.Then if you had made waste of all I haue:
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.158Then do but say to me what I should doThen doe but say to me what I should doe
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.i.162And she is fair, and, fairer than that word,And she is faire, and fairer then that word,
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.16good to be done than be one of the twenty to followgood to be done, then be one of the twentie to follow
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.43Then there is the County Palatine.Than is there the Countie Palentine.
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.49with a bone in his mouth than to either of these.with a bone in his mouth, then to either of these:
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.55why he hath a horse better than the Neapolitan's, a betterwhy he hath a horse better then the Neopolitans, a better
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.56bad habit of frowning than the Count Palatine; he isbad habite of frowning then the Count Palentine, he is
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.62What say you then to Falconbridge, the youngWhat say you then to Fauconbridge, the yong
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.83is best he is a little worse than a man, and when he isis best, he is a little worse then a man, and when he is
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.84worst he is little better than a beast. An the worst fallworst, he is little better then a beast: and the worst fall
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.98by some other sort than your father's imposition,by some other sort then your Fathers imposition,
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.ii.125shrive me than wive me. Come, Nerissa. Sirrah, goshriue me then wiue me. Come Nerrissa, sirra go
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.23thieves and land thieves, I mean pirates; and then theretheeues, and land theeues, I meane Pyrats, and then there
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.65Well then, your bond. And let me see; but hear you,Well then, your bond: and let me see, but heare you,
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.84Who then conceiving, did in eaning timeWho then conceauing, did in eaning time
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.101Three months from twelve, then, let me see, the rate –Three months from twelue, then let me see the rate.
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.111Well then, it now appears you need my help.Well then, it now appeares you neede my helpe:
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.112Go to then. You come to me and you say,Goe to then, you come to me, and you say,
The Merchant of VeniceMV I.iii.169Then meet me forthwith at the notary's;Then meete me forthwith at the Notaries,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.i.20Yourself, renowned Prince, then stood as fairYour selfe (renowned Prince) than stood as faire
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.i.45.2Good fortune then,Good fortune then,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.32father who, being more than sand-blind, high-gravel-blind,Father, who being more then sand-blinde, high grauel blinde,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.87Thou hast got more hair on thy chin than Dobbin mythou hast got more haire on thy chin, then Dobbin my
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.89It should seem then that Dobbin's tail growsIt should seeme then that Dobbins taile growes
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.91have on my face when I last saw him.taile then I haue of my face when I lost saw him.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.144More guarded than his fellows'. See it done.More garded then his fellowes: see it done.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.151maids is a simple coming-in for one man. And then tomaides is a simple comming in for one man, and then to
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.167Why then you must. But hear thee, Gratiano:Why then you must: but heare thee Gratiano,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ii.178Talk with respect, and swear but now and then,Talke with respect, and sweare but now and than,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.iv.13And whiter than the paper it writ onAnd whiter then the paper it writ on,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.v.23say you shall see a masque, but if you do, then it was notyou shall see a Maske, but if you doe, then it was not
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.v.30Clamber not you up to the casements then,Clamber not you vp to the casements then,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.v.46More than the wild-cat. Drones hive not with me;More then the wilde-cat: drones hiue not with me,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vi.6To seal love's bonds new-made than they are wontTo steale loues bonds new made, then they are wont
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vi.13Are with more spirit chased than enjoyed.Are with more spirit chased then enioy'd.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vi.24I'll watch as long for you then. Approach.Ile watch as long for you then: approach
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vi.68Than to be under sail and gone tonight.Then to be vnder saile, and gone to night.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.12If you choose that, then I am yours withal.If you choose that, then I am yours withall.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.21I'll then nor give nor hazard aught for lead.Ile then nor giue nor hazard ought for lead.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.34But more than these, in love I do deserve.But more then these, in loue I doe deserue.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.55Was set in worse than gold. They have in EnglandWas set in worse then gold! They haue in England
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.62.1Then I am yours.Then I am yours.
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.vii.75Then farewell heat, and welcome frost.Then farewell heate, and welcome frost:
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ix.27Not learning more than the fond eye doth teach,Not learning more then the fond eye doth teach,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ix.34Why then, to thee, thou silver treasure house.Why then to thee thou Siluer treasure house,
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ix.44How many then should cover that stand bare,How many then should couer that stand bare?
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ix.46How much low peasantry would then be gleanedHow much low pleasantry would then be gleaned
The Merchant of VeniceMV II.ix.59Did I deserve no more than a fool's head?Did I deserue no more then a fooles head,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.i.27fledged, and then it is the complexion of them all tofledg'd, and then it is the complexion of them al to
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.i.36hers than between jet and ivory, more between yourhers, then betweene Iet and Iuorie, more betweene your
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.i.37bloods than there is between red wine and Rhenish. Butbloods, then there is betweene red wine and rennish: but
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.11How to choose right, but then I am forsworn.How to choose right, but then I am forsworne,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.17Mine own I would say; but if mine then yours,Mine owne I would say: but of mine then yours,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.26Upon the rack, Bassanio? Then confessVpon the racke Bassanio, then confesse
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.35.1Well then, confess and live.Well then, confesse and liue.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.40Away then, I am locked in one of them;Away then, I am lockt in one of them,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.44Then if he lose he makes a swanlike end,Then if he loose he makes a Swan-like end,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.48And what is music then? Then music isAnd what is musique than? Than musique is
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.55Than young Alcides when he did redeemThen yong Alcides, when he did redeeme
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.62I view the fight than thou that mak'st the fray.I view the sight, then thou that mak'st the fray.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.101To entrap the wisest. Therefore thou gaudy gold,To intrap the wisest. Therefore then thou gaudie gold,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.105Which rather threaten'st than dost promise aught,Which rather threatnest then dost promise ought,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.106Thy paleness moves me more than eloquence,Thy palenesse moues me more then eloquence,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.123Faster than gnats in cobwebs. But her eyes,Faster then gnats in cobwebs: but her eies,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.161But she may learn; happier than this,But she may learne: happier then this,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.184Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence,Parts from this finger, then parts life from hence,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.185O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead.O then be bold to say Bassanio's dead.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.200No more pertains to me, my lord, than you.No more pertaines to me my Lord then you;
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.256And then I told you true; and yet, dear lady,And then I told you true: and yet deere Ladie,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.259My state was nothing, I should then have told youMy state was nothing, I should then haue told you
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.260That I was worse than nothing; for indeedThat I was worse then nothing: for indeede
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.287Than twenty times the value of the sumThen twenty times the value of the summe
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.296Than any that draws breath in Italy.Then any that drawes breath in Italie.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.300Double six thousand and then treble that,Double sixe thousand, and then treble that,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.ii.304And then away to Venice to your friend!And then away to Venice to your friend:
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.iii.36To see me pay his debt, and then I care not.To see me pay his debt, and then I care not.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.iv.9Than customary bounty can enforce you.Then customary bounty can enforce you.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.iv.72I could not do withal. Then I'll repent,I could not doe withall: then Ile repent,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.13Truly then, I fear you are damned both byTruly then I feare you are damned both by
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.38than reason; but if she be less than an honest woman,then reason: but if she be lesse then an honest woman,
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.39she is indeed more than I took her for.shee is indeed more then I tooke her for.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.46Then bid them prepare dinner.then bid them prepare dinner.
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.49Will you cover then, sir?Will you couer than sir?
The Merchant of VeniceMV III.v.84Then, howsome'er thou speak'st, 'mong other thingsThen how som ere thou speakst 'mong other things,
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.19To the last hour of act, and then 'tis thoughtTo the last houre of act, and then 'tis thought
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.41A weight of carrion flesh than to receiveA weight of carrion flesh, then to receiue
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.60More than a lodged hate and a certain loathingMore then a lodg'd hate, and a certaine loathing
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.79As seek to soften that – than which what's harder? –As seeke to soften that, then which what harder?
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.118Than to live still, and write mine epitaph.Then to liue still, and write mine Epitaph.
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.179.2Then must the Jew be merciful.Then must the Iew be mercifull.
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.186The throned monarch better than his crown.The throned Monarch better then his Crowne.
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.193And earthly power doth then show likest God'sAnd earthly power doth then shew likest Gods
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.241.2Why then, thus it is:Why then thus it is:
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.248How much more elder art thou than thy looks!How much more elder art thou then thy lookes?
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.265Than is her custom; it is still her useThen is her custome. It is still her vse
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.294Had been her husband, rather than a Christian.Had beene her husband, rather then a Christian.
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.305Take then thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh,Then take thy bond, take thou thy pound of flesh,
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.313Thou shalt have justice more than thou desir'st.Thou shalt haue iustice more then thou desirest.
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.315I take this offer then. Pay the bond thriceI take this offer then, pay the bond thrice,
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.324Or less than a just pound, be it but so muchOr lesse then a iust pound, be it so much
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.342Why, then the devil give him good of it!Why then the Deuill giue him good of it:
The Merchant of VeniceMV IV.i.431There's more depends on this than on the value.There's more depends on this then on the valew,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.95Until a king be by, and then his stateVntill a King be by, and then his state
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.100Methinks it sounds much sweeter than by day.Methinkes it sounds much sweeter then by day?
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.106No better a musician than the wren.No better a Musitian then the Wren?
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.138No more than I am well acquitted of.No more then I am wel acquitted of.
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.140It must appear in other ways than words,It must appeare in other waies then words,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.163No higher than thyself, the judge's clerk,No higher then thy selfe, the Iudges Clearke,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.181Deserved it too; and then the boy, his clerkDeseru'd it too: and then the Boy his Clearke
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.202You would not then have parted with the ring.You would not then haue parted with the Ring:
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.236Well, do you so. Let not me take him then!Well, doe you so: let not me take him then,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.254Then you shall be his surety. Give him this,Then you shall be his suretie: giue him this,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.255And bid him keep it better than the other.And bid him keepe it better then the other.
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.275Than you expect. Unseal this letter soon,Then you expect: vnseale this letter soone,
The Merchant of VeniceMV V.i.285When I am absent, then lie with my wife.When I am absent, then lie with my wife.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.153By these gloves, then 'twas he.By these gloues, then 'twas he.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.157By this hat, then he in the red face had it. ForBy this hat, then he in the red face had it: for
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.166Ay, you spake in Latin then too. But 'tis noI, you spake in Latten then to: but 'tis no
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.183I had rather than forty shillings I had my BookI had rather then forty shillings I had my booke
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.224I will do a greater thing than that, upon yourI will doe a greater thing then that, vpon your
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.i.292I'll rather be unmannerly than troublesome.Ile rather be vnmannerly, then troublesome:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.iii.29Why then, let kibes ensue.Why then let Kibes ensue.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.iii.58Then did the sun on dunghill shine.Then did the Sun on dung-hill shine.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.iii.71And by my side wear steel? Then Lucifer take all!And by my side weare Steele? then Lucifer take all.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.iv.125woman in Windsor knows more of Anne's mind thanwoman in Windsor knowes more of Ans minde then
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW I.iv.126I do, nor can do more than I do with her, I thank heaven.I doe, nor can doe more then I doe with her, I thanke heauen.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.6You are not young, no more am I. Go to, then,you are not yong, no more am I: goe to then,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.7there's sympathy. You are merry, so am I. Ha, ha, thenthere's simpathie: you are merry, so am I: ha, ha, then
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.25company. What should I say to him? I was then frugalCompany: what should I say to him? I was then / Frugall
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.37Well, I do then. Yet I say I could showWell: I doe then: yet I say, I could shew
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.58place together than the Hundredth Psalm to the tune ofplace together, then the hundred Psalms to the tune of
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.171what he gets more of her than sharp words, let it lie onwhat hee gets more of her, then sharpe words, let it lye on
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.i.213Have with you. I had rather hear them scold thanHaue with you: I had rather heare them scold, then
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.2Why then, the world's mine oyster,Why then the world's mine Oyster,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.35Good maid, then.Good maid then.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.83Ay, forsooth; and then you mayI, forsooth: and then you may
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.114life than she does. Do what she will, say what she will,life then she do's: doe what shee will, say what she will,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.120Nay, but do so, then – and, lookNay, but doe so then, and looke
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.135make more of thy old body than I have done. Will theymake more of thy olde body then I haue done: will they
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.162better plight for a lender than you are, the which hathbetter plight for a Lender, then you are: the which hath
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.208Of what quality was your love, then?Of what qualitie was your loue then?
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.237commend themselves. I could drive her then from thecommend themselues, I could driue her then from the
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.290than my wife with herself. Then she plots, then shethen my wife with her selfe. Then she plots, then shee
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.291ruminates, then she devises. And what they think inruminates, then shee deuises: and what they thinke in
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.ii.296Page. I will about it. Better three hours too soon than aPage. I will about it, better three houres too soone, then a
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.iii.56By gar, then I have as much mockvater as deBy gar, then I haue as much Mock-vater as de
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW II.iii.88Let us wag, then.Let vs wag then.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.ii.6than follow him like a dwarf.then follow him like a dwarfe.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.ii.36together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife,together. Well, I will take him, then torture my wife,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.ii.43praised for this than mocked, for it is as positive as thepraisd for this, then mock'd, for it is as possitiue, as the
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.ii.51more money than I'll speak of.more mony / Then Ile speake of.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iii.37Go to, then. We'll use this unwholesomeGo-too then: we'l vse this vnwholsome
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iii.115as his peril. I had rather than a thousand pound he wereas his perill. I had rather then a thousand pound he were
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iii.142without cause, why then make sport at me; then let mewithout cause, / Why then make sport at me, then let me
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iii.192Heaven make you better than yourHeauen make you better then your
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iv.3.1Alas, how then?Alas, how then?
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iv.16Than stamps in gold or sums in sealed bags.Then stampes in Gold, or summes in sealed bagges:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iv.21Cannot attain it, why then – hark you hither.Cannot attaine it, why then harke you hither.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iv.63dole. They can tell you how things go better than I can.dole, they can tell you how things go, better then I can:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.iv.90Till then, farewell, sir. She must needs go in;Till then, farewell Sir, she must needs go in,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.v.47then judge of my merit.then iudge of my merit.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.v.102of a peck, hilt to point, heel to head; and then, toof a Pecke, hilt to point, heele to head. And then to
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.v.108of this bath, when I was more than half stewed inof this Bath (when I was more then halfe stew'd in
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.v.114you have suffered all this. My suit, then, is desperate?you haue sufferd all this. My suite then is desperate:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW III.v.122Is it? I will then address me to my appointment.Is it? I will then addresse mee to my appointment:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.i.27than polecats, sure.then Powlcats, sure.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.i.75He is a better scholar than I thought heHe is a better scholler then I thought he
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.39Why, then, you are utterly shamed, andWhy then you are vtterly sham'd, &
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.41with him, away with him! Better shame than murder.with him, away with him: Better shame, then murther.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.61I'll go out, then.Ile go out then.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.69rather than a mischief.rather then a mischiefe.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.109way then to unfool me again? Set down the basket,way then to vnfoole me againe. Set downe the basket
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.ii.210Come, to the forge with it, then. ShapeCome, to the Forge with it, then
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.iv.7Than thee with wantonness. Now doth thy honour stand,Then thee with wantonnes: Now doth thy honor stand
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.iv.16There is no better way than that they spoke of.There is no better way then that they spoke of.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.iv.55Then let them all encircle him about,Then let them all encircle him about,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.v.56taught me more wit than ever I learned before in mytaught me more wit, then euer I learn'd before in my
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.v.99suffered more for their sakes, more than the villainoussuffer'd more for their sakes; more then the villanous
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW IV.vi.5A hundred pound in gold more than your loss.A hundred pound in gold, more then your losse.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW V.iii.10than a great deal of heartbreak.then a great deale of heart-breake.
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW V.v.9beast – O Jove, a beastly fault – and then another faultbeast, (O Ioue, a beastly fault:) and then another fault,
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW V.v.68More fertile-fresh than all the field to see;Mote fertile-fresh then all the Field to see:
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW V.v.108Become the forest better than the town?Become the Forrest better then the Towne?
The Merry Wives of WindsorMW V.v.186Upon my life, then, you took the wrong.Vpon my life then, you tooke the wrong.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.9And then the moon – like to a silver bowAnd then the Moone, like to a siluer bow,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.77Than that which, withering on the virgin thorn,Then that which withering on the virgin thorne,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.100As well possessed. My love is more than his,As well possest: my loue is more then his:
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.103And – which is more than all these boasts can be – And (which is more then all these boasts can be)
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.105Why should not I then prosecute my right?Why should not I then prosecute my right?
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.150If then true lovers have been ever crossedIf then true Louers haue beene euer crost,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.152Then let us teach our trial patience,Then let vs teach our triall patience,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.163Cannot pursue us. If thou lovest me, thenCannot pursue vs. If thou lou'st me, then
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.176In number more than ever women spoke, – (In number more then euer women spoke)
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.184More tuneable than lark to shepherd's earMore tuneable then Larke to shepheards eare,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.206O then, what graces in my love do dwellO then, what graces in my Loue do dwell,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.i.247Then to the wood will he tomorrow nightThen to the wood will he, to morrow night
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.ii.9on; then read the names of the actors; and so grow to aon: then read the names of the Actors: and so grow on to a
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND I.ii.91and then you will play bare-faced! But, masters, hereand then you will play bare-fac'd. But masters here
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.7Swifter than the moon's sphere,swifter then ye Moons sphere;
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.53Then slip I from her bum. Down topples she,Then slip I from her bum, downe topples she,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.55And then the whole choir hold their hips and laugh,And then the whole quire hold their hips, and loffe,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.64Then I must be thy lady. But I knowThen I must be thy Lady: but I know
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.118Do you amend it, then! It lies in you.Do you amend it then, it lies in you,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.131Following – her womb then rich with my young squire – Following (her wombe then rich with my yong squire)
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.179The next thing then she, waking, looks upon – The next thing when she waking lookes vpon,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.210Than to be used as you use your dog?Then to be vsed as you doe your dogge.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.225Then how can it be said I am aloneThen how can it be said I am alone,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.i.266More fond on her than she upon her love.More fond on her, then she vpon her loue;
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.2Then for the third part of a minute hence:Then for the third part of a minute hence,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.8Then to your offices, and let me rest.Then to your offices, and let me rest.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.56So then two bosoms and a single troth.So then two bosomes, and a single troth.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.57Then by your side no bed-room me deny,Then by your side, no bed-roome me deny,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.69And then end life when I end loyalty.And then end life, when I end loyalty:
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.99If so, my eyes are oftener washed than hers.If so, my eyes are oftner washt then hers.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.116Yet Hermia still loves you. Then be content.Yet Hermia still loues you; then be content.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND II.ii.161No? Then I well perceive you are not nigh.No, then I well perceiue you are not nye,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.i.30than your lion living; and we ought look to't.then your Lyon liuing: and wee ought to looke to it.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.i.50Why, then, may you leave a casement of theWhy then may you leaue a casement of the
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.i.55present the person of Moonshine. Then there is anotherpresent the person of Moone-shine. Then there is another
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.i.66If that may be, then all is well. Come, sit downIf that may be, then all is well. Come, sit downe
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.i.81A stranger Pyramus than e'er played here.A stranger Piramus, then ere plaid here.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.2Then what it was that next came in her eye,Then what it was that next came in her eye,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.35This falls out better than I could devise!This fals out better then I could deuise:
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.66Of maiden's patience. Hast thou slain him then?Of maidens patience. Hast thou slaine him then?
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.73Than thine, thou serpent, never adder stung.Then thine (thou serpent) neuer Adder stung.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.77I pray thee, tell me then that he is well.I pray thee tell me then that he is well.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.92Then fate o'errules, that, one man holding truth,Then fate ore-rules, that one man holding troth,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.94About the wood go swifter than the wind,About the wood, goe swifter then the winde,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.101Swifter than arrow from the Tartar's bow.Swifter then arrow from the Tartars bowe.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.118Then will two at once woo one – Then will two at once wooe one,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.188Than all you fiery oes and eyes of light,Then all yon fierie oes, and eies of light.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.235This you should pity rather than despise.This you should pittie, rather then despise.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.249Thou canst compel no more than she entreat.Thou canst compell, no more then she entreate.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.250Thy threats have no more strength than her weak prayers.Thy threats haue no more strength then her weak praise.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.254I say I love thee more than he can do.I say, I loue thee more then he can do.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.271What? Can you do me greater harm than hate?What, can you do me greater harme then hate?
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.276Why then, you left me – O, the gods forbid! – Why then you left me (O the gods forbid
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.304Because she is something lower than myselfBecause she is something lower then my selfe,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.342Your hands than mine are quicker for a fray.Your hands then mine, are quicker for a fray,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.361Then stir Demetrius up with bitter wrong,Then stirre Demetrius vp with bitter wrong;
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.366Then crush this herb into Lysander's eye – Then crush this hearbe into Lysanders eie,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.376And then I will her charmed eye releaseAnd then I will her charmed eie release
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.403.2Follow me thenFollow me then
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.414When I come where he calls, then he is gone.When I come where he cals, then he's gone.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.415The villain is much lighter-heeled than I.The villaine is much lighter heel'd then I:
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND III.ii.426Nay, then thou mockest me. Thou shalt buy this dearNay then thou mock'st me; thou shalt buy this deere,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.50For she his hairy temples then had roundedFor she his hairy temples then had rounded,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.58I then did ask of her her changeling child,I then did aske of her, her changeling childe,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.81Than common sleep of all these five the sense.Then common sleepe; of all these, fine the sense.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.94Then, my queen, in silence sad,Then my Queene in silence sad,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.97Swifter than the wandering moon.Swifter then the wandering Moone.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.i.197Why, then, we are awake. Let's follow him,Why then we are awake; lets follow him,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND IV.ii.5If he come not, then the play is marred. It goes notIf he come not, then the play is mar'd. It goes not
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.2More strange than true. I never may believeMore strange then true. I neuer may beleeue
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.6More than cool reason ever comprehends.more / Then coole reason euer comprehends.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.9One sees more devils than vast hell can hold.One sees more diuels then vaste hell can hold;
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.30.2More than to usMore then to vs,
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.112Consider then we come but in despite.Consider then, we come but in despight.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.210It must be your imagination then, and notIt must be your imagination then, & not
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.212If we imagine no worse of them than they ofIf wee imagine no worse of them then they of
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.219Then know that I as Snug the joiner amThen know that I, one Snug the Ioyner am
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.262And then came Pyramus.And then came Piramus.
A Midsummer Night's DreamMND V.i.300Less than an ace, man; for he is dead. He isLesse then an ace man. For he is dead, he is
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.16expectation than you must expect of me to tell you how.expectation, then you must expect of me to tell you how.
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.26truer than those that are so washed. How much better istruer, then those that are so wash'd, how much better is
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.27it to weep at joy than to joy at weeping!it to weepe at ioy, then to ioy at weeping?
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.54It is so, indeed; he is no less than a stuffed man;It is so indeed, he is no lesse then a stuft man:
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.80He is sooner caught than the pestilence, and the takerhe is sooner caught then the pestilence, and the taker
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.100Signior Benedick, no; for then were you a child.Signior Benedicke, no, for then were you a childe.
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.116Then is courtesy a turncoat. But it is certain IThen is curtesie a turne-coate, but it is certaine I
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.164that were she other than she is, she were unhandsome;that were shee other then she is, she were vnhandsome,
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.231with love than I will get again with drinking, pick outwith loue, then I will get againe with drinking, picke out
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.252I look for an earthquake too, then.I looke for an earthquake too then.
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.295What need the bridge much broader than the flood?What need ye bridge much broder then the flood?
Much Ado About NothingMA I.i.305Then after, to her father will I break,Then after, to her father will I breake,
Much Ado About NothingMA I.iii.25I had rather be a canker in a hedge than a roseI had rather be a canker in a hedge, then a rose
Much Ado About NothingMA I.iii.27of all than to fashion a carriage to rob love from any. Inof all, then to fashion a carriage to rob loue from any: in
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.10Then half Signor Benedick's tongue in CountThen halfe signior Benedicks tongue in Count
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.19Too curst is more than curst. I shall lessenToo curst is more then curst, I shall lessen
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.31that hath a beard is more than a youth, and he that haththat hath a beard, is more then a youth: and he that hath
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.32no beard is less than a man; and he that is more than ano beard, is lesse then a man: and hee that is more then a
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.33youth is not for me, and he that is less than a man, I amyouth, is not for mee: and he that is lesse then a man, I am
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.36Well, then, go you into hell?Well then, goe you into hell.
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.53than earth. Would it not grieve a woman to bethen earth, would it not grieue a woman to be
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.69then comes repentance and, with his bad legs, falls intothen comes repentance, and with his bad legs falls into
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.87.1Why, then, your visor should be thatched.Why then your visor should be thatcht.
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.127and angers them, and then they laugh at him and beatand angers them, and then they laugh at him, and beat
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.134at, strikes him into melancholy; and then there's aat) strikes him into melancholly, and then there's a
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.224than a great thaw; huddling jest upon jest with suchthen a great thaw, hudling iest vpon iest, with such
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.247embassage to the Pigmies, rather than hold three words'embassage to the Pigmies, rather then hould three words
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.267How then? Sick?How then? sicke?
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.309No, sure, my lord, my mother cried; but thenNo sure my Lord, my Mother cried, but then
Much Ado About NothingMA II.i.319ever sad then; for I have heard my daughter say, she hatheuer sad then: for I haue heard my daughter say, she hath
Much Ado About NothingMA II.ii.30Go, then; find me a meet hour to draw DonGoe then, finde me a meete howre, to draw on
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.43To slander music any more than once.To slander musicke any more then once.
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.44It is the witness still of excellencyIt is the witnesse still of excellency, / To slander Musicke any more then once. / Prince. It is the witnesse still of excellencie,
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.64Then sigh not so, but let them go,Then sigh not so, but let them goe,
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.72Then sigh not so, but let them go,Then sigh not so, &c.
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.148Then down upon her knees she falls, weeps,Then downe vpon her knees she falls, weepes,
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.242I took no more pains for those thanks thanI tooke no more paines for those thankes, then
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.245You take pleasure then in the message?You take pleasure then in the message.
Much Ado About NothingMA II.iii.251took no more pains for those thanks than you took painstooke no more paines for those thankes then you tooke paines
Much Ado About NothingMA III.i.19To praise him more than ever man did merit.To praise him more then euer man did merit,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.i.32Then go we near her, that her ear lose nothingThen go we neare her that her eare loose nothing,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.i.50Of prouder stuff than that of Beatrice.Of prowder stuffe then that of Beatrice:
Much Ado About NothingMA III.i.105If it prove so, then loving goes by haps;If it proue so, then louing goes by haps,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.i.116Believe it better than reportingly.Beleeue it better then reportingly.
Much Ado About NothingMA III.ii.2and then go I toward Arragon.and then go I toward Arragon.
Much Ado About NothingMA III.ii.70played their parts with Beatrice, and then the two bearsplayed their parts with Beatrice, and then the two Beares
Much Ado About NothingMA III.ii.103wedding-day. If you love her then, tomorrow wed her;wedding day, if you loue her, then to morrow wed her:
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.28Why, then, take no note of him, but let him go;Why then take no note of him, but let him go,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.45Why, then, let them alone till they are sober;Why then let them alone till they are sober,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.46if they make you not then the better answer, you mayif they make you not then the better answere, you may
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.67Why, then, depart in peace, and let the childWhy then depart in peace, and let the childe
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.88then all to bed.then all to bed.
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.101Stand thee close then under this penthouse,Stand thee close then vnder this penthouse,
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iii.136out more apparel than the man. But art not thou thyselfout more apparrell then the man; but art not thou thy selfe
Much Ado About NothingMA III.iv.41Ye light o' love, with your heels! Then if yourYe Light aloue with your heeles, then if your
Much Ado About NothingMA III.v.14that is an old man and no honester than I.that is an old man, and no honester then I.
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.19How now! Interjections? Why, then, some beHow now! interiections? why then, some be
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.85Why, then are you no maiden. Leonato,Why then you are no maiden. Leonato,
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.123Thought I thy spirits were stronger than thy shames,Thought I thy spirits were stronger then thy shames,
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.172Why seek'st thou then to cover with excuseWhy seek'st thou then to couer with excuse,
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.177Than that which maiden modesty doth warrant,Then that which maiden modestie doth warrant,
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.218Why, then we rack the value, then we findWhy then we racke the value, then we finde
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.228Than when she lived indeed. Then shall he mourn,Then when she liu'd indeed: then shal he mourne,
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.234Than I can lay it down in likelihood.Then I can lay it downe in likelihood.
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.277Why, then, God forgive me!Why then God forgiue me.
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.300come to take hands, and then, with public accusation,come to take hands, and then with publike accusation
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.i.321Use it for my love some other way than swearingVse it for my loue some other way then swearing
Much Ado About NothingMA IV.ii.58And this is more, masters, than you can deny.And this is more masters then you can deny,
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.32My griefs cry louder than advertisement.My griefs cry lowder then aduertisement.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.135Nay, then, give him another staff; this last wasNay then giue him another staffe, this last was
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.186meet; and till then, peace be with him.meete, and till then peace be with him.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.194He is then a giant to an ape; but then is an apeHe is then a Giant to an Ape, but then is an Ape
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.229with my death than repeat over to my shame. The ladywith my death, then repeate ouer to my shame: the Ladie
Much Ado About NothingMA V.i.283Tomorrow then I will expect your coming;To morrow then I will expect your comming,
Much Ado About NothingMA V.ii.4Will you then write me a sonnet in praise ofWill you then write me a Sonnet in praise of
Much Ado About NothingMA V.ii.43O, stay but till then!O stay but till then.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.ii.44Then ’ is spoken; fare you well now. And yet,Then, is spoken: fare you well now, and yet
Much Ado About NothingMA V.ii.72in monument than the bell rings and the widow weeps.in monuments, then the Bels ring, & the Widdow weepes.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iii.31And then to Leonato's we will go.And then to Leonatoes we will goe.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iii.33Than this for whom we rendered up this woe.Then this for whom we rendred vp this woe.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.55Why, then she's mine. Sweet, let me see your face.Why then she's mine, sweet let me see your face.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.74.2Why no, no more than reason.Why no, no more then reason.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.75Why, then your uncle and the Prince and ClaudioWhy then your Vncle, and the Prince, & Claudio,
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.77.2Troth no, no more than reason.Troth no, no more then reason.
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.78Why, then my cousin, Margaret, and UrsulaWhy then my Cosin Margaret and Vrsula
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.82'Tis no such matter. Then you do not love me?'Tis no matter, then you doe not loue me?
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.121There is no staff more reverend than one tipped withthere is no staff more reuerend then one tipt with
Much Ado About NothingMA V.iv.126Dance, and then exeuntDance.
OthelloOth I.i.24More than a spinster – unless the bookish theoric,More then a Spinster. Vnlesse the Bookish Theoricke:
OthelloOth I.i.41.1I would not follow him then.I would not follow him then.
OthelloOth I.i.129We then have done you bold and saucy wrongs;We then haue done you bold, and saucie wrongs.
OthelloOth I.ii.61Than with your weapons.then with your Weapons.
OthelloOth I.iii.22That as it more concerns the Turk than Rhodes,That as it more concernes the Turke then Rhodes,
OthelloOth I.iii.43'Tis certain then for Cyprus.'Tis certaine then for Cyprus:
OthelloOth I.iii.87More than pertains to feats of broil and battle;More then pertaines to Feats of Broiles, and Battaile,
OthelloOth I.iii.108Than these thin habits and poor likelihoodsThen these thin habits, and poore likely-hoods
OthelloOth I.iii.173.1Than their bare hands.Then their bare hands.
OthelloOth I.iii.189I had rather to adopt a child than get it.I had rather to adopt a Child, then get it.
OthelloOth I.iii.287Your son-in-law is far more fair than black.Your Son-in-law is farre more Faire then Blacke.
OthelloOth I.iii.306and then we have a prescription to die, when death isand then haue we a prescription to dye, when death is
OthelloOth I.iii.335toughness. I could never better stead thee thantoughnesse. I could neuer better steed thee then
OthelloOth I.iii.349delicate way than drowning. Make all the money thoudelicate way then drowning. Make all the Money thou
OthelloOth I.iii.355in compassing thy joy than to be drowned and goin Compassing thy ioy, then to be drown'd, and go
OthelloOth II.i.163in the soldier than in the scholar.in the Souldier, then in the Scholler.
OthelloOth II.i.209valiant – as they say base men being in love have then aValiant, (as they say base men being in Loue, haue then a
OthelloOth II.i.210nobility in their natures more than is native to them –Nobilitie in their Natures, more then is natiue to them)
OthelloOth II.i.232than in putting on the mere form of civil andthen in putting on the meere forme of Ciuill, and
OthelloOth II.i.269shall then have to prefer them, and the impediment mostshall then haue to preferre them. And the impediment most
OthelloOth II.iii.68Why, then, let a soldier drink.Why then let a Souldier drinke.
OthelloOth II.iii.91Then take thine auld cloak about thee.And take thy awl'd Cloake about thee.
OthelloOth II.iii.93'Fore God, this is a more exquisite song than theWhy this is a more exquisite Song then the
OthelloOth II.iii.112Why, very well; you must not think then that IWhy very well then: you must not thinke then, that I
OthelloOth II.iii.175Devesting them for bed; and then but now –Deuesting them for Bed: and then, but now:
OthelloOth II.iii.213Thou dost deliver more or less than truth,Thou dost deliuer more, or lesse then Truth,
OthelloOth II.iii.216Than it should do offence to Michael Cassio.Then it should do offence to Michaell Cassio.
OthelloOth II.iii.227Outran my purpose and I returned the ratherOut-ran my purpose: and I return'd then rather
OthelloOth II.iii.261than in reputation. Reputation is an idle and most falsethen in Reputation. Reputation is an idle, and most false
OthelloOth II.iii.266in his mood – a punishment more in policy than inin his moode, (a punishment more in policie, then in
OthelloOth II.iii.270I will rather sue to be despised than to deceive soI will rather sue to be despis'd, then to deceiue so
OthelloOth II.iii.312goodness not to do more than she is requested. Thisgoodnesse, not to do more then she is requested. This
OthelloOth II.iii.315naming, this crack of your love shall grow stronger thannaming, this cracke of your Loue, shall grow stronger, then
OthelloOth II.iii.326And what's he then that says I play the villain,And what's he then, / That saies I play the Villaine?
OthelloOth II.iii.332As the free elements; and then for herAs the free Elements. And then for her
OthelloOth II.iii.338With his weak function. How am I then a villainWith his weake Function. How am I then a Villaine,
OthelloOth III.i.19Then put up your pipes in your bag, for I'llThen put vp your Pipes in your bagge, for Ile
OthelloOth III.i.30.2You have not been abed then?You haue not bin a-bed then?
OthelloOth III.iii.13.1Than in a politic distance.Then in a politique distance.
OthelloOth III.iii.28Than give thy cause away.Then giue thy cause away.
OthelloOth III.iii.58.1Tomorrow dinner then?To morrow Dinner then?
OthelloOth III.iii.60Why, then, tomorrow night, or Tuesday morn,Why then to morrow night, on Tuesday morne,
OthelloOth III.iii.113As if thou then hadst shut up in thy brainAs if thou then hadd'st shut vp in thy Braine
OthelloOth III.iii.128Why, then, I think Cassio's an honest man.Why then I thinke Cassio's an honest man.
OthelloOth III.iii.147Shapes faults that are not – that your wisdom then,Shapes faults that are not) that your wisedome
OthelloOth III.iii.206.3Why, go to, then!Why go too then:
OthelloOth III.iii.218Than to suspicion.Then to Suspition.
OthelloOth III.iii.241Sees and knows more, much more than he unfolds.Sees, and knowes more, much more then he vnfolds.
OthelloOth III.iii.269Than keep a corner in the thing I loveThen keepe a corner in the thing I loue
OthelloOth III.iii.271Prerogatived are they less than the base.Prerogatiu'd are they lesse then the Base,
OthelloOth III.iii.273Even then this forked plague is fated to usEuen then, this forked plague is Fated to vs,
OthelloOth III.iii.275If she be false, O, then heaven mocks itself!If she be false, Heauen mock'd it selfe:
OthelloOth III.iii.334.1Than but to know't a little.Then but to know't a little.
OthelloOth III.iii.360.1Than answer my waked wrath!Then answer my wak'd wrath.
OthelloOth III.iii.370.1Greater than that.Greater then that.
OthelloOth III.iii.395To bring them to that prospect. Damn them thenTo bring them to that Prospect: Damne them then,
OthelloOth III.iii.397More than their own! What then? How then?More then their owne. What then? How then?
OthelloOth III.iii.418And then, sir, would he gripe and wring my hand,And then (Sir) would he gripe, and wring my hand:
OthelloOth III.iii.419Cry ‘ O sweet creature!’ and then kiss me hard,Cry, oh sweet Creature: then kisse me hard,
OthelloOth III.iii.421That grew upon my lips; then laid his legThat grew vpon my lippes, laid his Leg ore my Thigh,
OthelloOth III.iii.422Over my thigh, and sighed and kissed, and thenAnd sigh, and kisse, and then cry cursed Fate,
OthelloOth III.iv.77Then would to God that I had never seen it!Then would to Heauen, that I had neuer seene't?
OthelloOth III.iv.127Than for myself I dare. Let that suffice you.Then for my selfe, I dare. Let that suffice you.
OthelloOth III.iv.134Something of moment then. I will go meet him.Something of moment then: I will go meet him,
OthelloOth III.iv.171More tedious than the dial eightscore times!More tedious then the Diall, eight score times?
OthelloOth IV.i.11What then?What then?
OthelloOth IV.i.12Why, then, 'tis hers, my lord, and being hers,Why then 'tis hers (my Lord) and being hers,
OthelloOth IV.i.31.1No more than he'll unswear.No more then he'le vn-sweare.
OthelloOth IV.i.39and then to confess! I tremble at it. Nature would notand then to confesse: I tremble at it. Nature would not
OthelloOth IV.i.63There's many a beast then in a populous city,Ther's many a Beast then in a populous Citty,
OthelloOth IV.i.191O, a thousand, thousand times! – And then ofOh, a thousand, a thousand times: / And then of
OthelloOth IV.ii.1You have seen nothing then?You haue seene nothing then?
OthelloOth IV.ii.4But then I saw no harm; and then I heardBut then I saw no harme: and then I heard,
OthelloOth IV.ii.87.2I cry you mercy then:I cry you mercy then.
OthelloOth IV.ii.177all conveniency, than suppliest me with the least advantageall conueniencie, then suppliest me with the least aduantage
OthelloOth IV.ii.205this instant do build on thee a better opinion than everthis instant do build on thee a better opinion then euer
OthelloOth IV.ii.213reason to believe now than ever – I mean purpose,reason to beleeue now then euer (I meane purpose,
OthelloOth IV.ii.221Is that true? Why, then Othello and DesdemonaIs that true? Why then Othello and Desdemona
OthelloOth IV.iii.10How goes it now? He looks gentler than he did.How goes it now? He lookes gentler then he did.
OthelloOth IV.iii.52I called my love false love, but what said he then?I call'd my Loue false Loue: but what said he then?
OthelloOth IV.iii.101Then let them use us well: else let them knowThen let them vse vs well: else let them know,
OthelloOth V.i.25But that my coat is better than thou think'st.But that my Coate is better then thou know'st:
OthelloOth V.i.45Nobody come? Then shall I bleed to death.Nobody come: then shall I bleed to death.
OthelloOth V.ii.4Nor scar that whiter skin of hers than snow,Nor scarre that whiter skin of hers, then Snow,
OthelloOth V.ii.7Put out the light, and then put out the light:Put out the Light, and then put out the Light:
OthelloOth V.ii.33.3Then heavenThen Heauen
OthelloOth V.ii.37And yet I fear you: for you're fatal thenAnd yet I feare you: for you're fatall then
OthelloOth V.ii.57.1Then Lord have mercy on me!O Heauen haue mercy on me.
OthelloOth V.ii.66.2He found it then.He found it then:
OthelloOth V.ii.111She comes more nearer earth than she was wont,She comes more neerer Earth then she was wont,
OthelloOth V.ii.116Not Cassio killed! Then murder's out of tune,Not Cassio kill'd? Then Murther's out of tune,
OthelloOth V.ii.160.1Than thou wast worthy her.Then thou was't worthy her.
OthelloOth V.ii.176Than what he found himself was apt and true.Then what he found himselfe was apt, and true.
OthelloOth V.ii.191I thought so then; I'll kill myself for grief.I thought so then: Ile kill my selfe for greefe.
OthelloOth V.ii.226More than indeed belonged to such a trifle –(More then indeed belong'd to such a Trifle)
OthelloOth V.ii.255Look in upon me then, and speak with me,Looke in vpon me then, and speake with me,
OthelloOth V.ii.262Than twenty times your stop. but, O vain boast! –Then twenty times your stop. But (oh vaine boast)
OthelloOth V.ii.339Nor set down aught in malice. Then must you speakNor set downe ought in malice. / Then must you speake,
OthelloOth V.ii.344Richer than all his tribe; of one whose subdued eyes,Richer then all his Tribe: Of one, whose subdu'd Eyes,
OthelloOth V.ii.358More fell than anguish, hunger, or the sea,More fell then Anguish, Hunger, or the Sea:
PericlesPer Chorus.I.17This Antioch, then. Antiochus the GreatThis Antioch, then Antiochus the great,
PericlesPer I.i.48I'll make my will then, and as sick men doIle make my Will then, and as sicke men doe,
PericlesPer I.i.57Scorning advice, read the conclusion then,Scorning aduice; read the conclusion then:
PericlesPer I.i.96He's more secure to keep it shut than shown,Hee's more secure to keepe it shut, then showne.
PericlesPer I.i.109Then give my tongue like leave to love my head.Then giue my tongue like leaue, to loue my head.
PericlesPer I.i.120And until then your entertain shall beAnd vntill then, your entertaine shall bee
PericlesPer I.i.126Then were it certain you were not so badThen were it certaine you were not so bad,
PericlesPer I.i.136Blush not in actions blacker than the nightBlush not in actions blacker then the night,
PericlesPer I.i.142Then, lest my life be cropped to keep you clear,Then least my life be cropt, to keepe you cleare,
PericlesPer I.ii.11Then it is thus: the passions of the mind,Then it is thus, the passions of the mind,
PericlesPer I.ii.47I cannot be much lower than my knees.I cannot be much lower then my knees.
PericlesPer I.ii.50.1And then return to us.And then returne to vs,
PericlesPer I.ii.70Attend me then. I went to Antioch,Attend me then, I went to Antioch,
PericlesPer I.ii.85Decrease not, but grow faster than the years.Decrease not, but grow faster then the yeares,
PericlesPer I.ii.110Day serves not light more faithful than I'll be.day serues not light more faithfull then Ile be.
PericlesPer I.ii.115Tyre, I now look from thee then, and to TarsusTyre I now looke from thee then, and to Tharsus
PericlesPer I.iv.18I'll then discourse our woes, felt several years,Ile then discourse our woes felt seuerall yeares,
PericlesPer Chorus.II.5Be quiet then as men should beBe quiet then, as men should bee,
PericlesPer II.i.65than we can do with working.then we can doe with working.
PericlesPer II.i.66Canst thou catch any fishes then?Canst thou catch any Fishes then?
PericlesPer II.i.68Nay then, thou wilt starve, sure,Nay then thou wilt starue sure:
PericlesPer II.i.74And have no more of life than may sufficeAnd haue no more of life then may suffize,
PericlesPer II.i.88But crave? Then I'll turn craverBut craue? Then Ile turne Crauer
PericlesPer II.i.90Why, are your beggars whipped then?Why, are you Beggers whipt then?
PericlesPer II.i.93office than to be beadle. But, master, I'll go draw up theoffice, then to be Beadle: But Maister, Ile goe draw vp the
PericlesPer II.i.144I'll pay your bounties; till then rest your debtor.Ile pay your bounties; till then, rest your debter.
PericlesPer II.i.166Then honour be but a goal to my will,Then Honour be but a Goale to my Will,
PericlesPer II.ii.47He had need mean better than his outward showHe had need meane better, then his outward shew
PericlesPer II.ii.50To have practised more the whipstock than the lance.To haue practis'd more the Whipstocke, then the Launce.
PericlesPer II.iii.5Were more than you expect, or more than's fit,Were more then you expect, or more then's fit,
PericlesPer II.iii.12'Tis more by fortune, lady, than by merit.Tis more by Fortune (Lady) then my Merit.
PericlesPer II.iii.34He has done no more than other knights have done.ha's done no more / Then other Knights haue done,
PericlesPer II.iv.21Follow me then. Lord Helicane, a word.Follow me then: Lord Hellicane, a word.
PericlesPer II.iv.26Wrong not yourself then, noble Helicane,Wrong not your selfe then, noble Hellican,
PericlesPer II.iv.57Then you love us, we you, and we'll clasp hands.Then you loue vs, we you, & wee'le claspe hands:
PericlesPer II.v.68Then, as you are as virtuous as fair,Then as you are as vertuous, as faire,
PericlesPer II.v.95And then, with what haste you can, get you to bed.And then with what haste you can, get you to bed.
PericlesPer Chorus.III.15.5lords kneel to him. Then enter Thaisa with child, withLords kneele to him; then enter Thaysa with child, with
PericlesPer III.i.7How does my queen? Thou storm, venomouslyHow does my Queene? then storme venomously,
PericlesPer III.i.35Even at the first thy loss is more than canEuen at the first, thy losse is more then can
PericlesPer III.ii.27Than nobleness and riches. Careless heirsthen Noblenesse & Riches; / Carelesse Heyres,
PericlesPer III.ii.39Than to be thirsty after tottering honour,Then to be thirsty after tottering honour,
PericlesPer III.iii.34.1Than yours, my lord.then yours, my Lord.
PericlesPer III.iii.36Then give you up to the masked Neptune, andthen giue you vp to the mask'd Neptune, and
PericlesPer IV.i.10The fitter then the gods should have her.The fitter then the Gods should haue her.
PericlesPer IV.i.33With more than foreign heart. We every daywith more then forraine heart, wee euery day
PericlesPer IV.ii.7but poor three, and they can do no more than they canbut poore three, and they can doe no more then they can
PericlesPer IV.ii.85If it please the gods to defend you by men, thenIf it please the Gods to defend you by men, then
PericlesPer IV.iii.7Much less in blood than virtue, yet a princessmuch lesse in bloud then vertue, yet a Princes
PericlesPer IV.iii.28.2Be it so, then.Be it so then,
PericlesPer IV.iv.50In her unholy service. Patience then,In her vnholie seruice: Patience then,
PericlesPer IV.vi.1Well, I had rather than twice the worth of herWell, I had rather then twice the worth of her
PericlesPer IV.vi.36less than it gives a good report to a number to be chaste.lesse then it giues a good report to a number to be chaste.
PericlesPer IV.vi.94Diseases have been sold dearer than physic –diseases haue beene solde deerer then Phisicke,
PericlesPer IV.vi.142An if she were a thornier piece of ground than sheAnd if shee were a thornyer peece of ground then shee
PericlesPer IV.vi.176Any of these ways are yet better than this,anie of these wayes are yet better then this:
PericlesPer V.i.104No other than I appear.no other then I appeare.
PericlesPer V.i.210Is it no more to be your daughter thanIs it no more to be your daughter, then
PericlesPer V.ii.2More a little, and then dumb.More a little, and then dum.
PericlesPer V.iii.53.2'Twas Helicanus then.T'was Hellicanus then.
PericlesPer V.iii.63More like a god than you. Will you delivermore like a god then you, will you deliuer
Richard IIR2 I.i.5Which then our leisure would not let us hear – Which then our leysure would not let vs heare,
Richard IIR2 I.i.15.1Then call them to our presence.Then call them to our presence
Richard IIR2 I.i.74As to take up mine honour's pawn, then stoop.As to take vp mine Honors pawne, then stoope.
Richard IIR2 I.i.124Then, Bolingbroke, as low as to thy heartThen Bullingbrooke, as low as to thy heart.
Richard IIR2 I.i.184Then, dear my liege, mine honour let me try.Then (deere my Liege) mine Honor let me trie,
Richard IIR2 I.ii.2Doth more solicit me than your exclaimsDoth more solicite me then your exclaimes,
Richard IIR2 I.ii.42Where then, alas, may I complain myself?Where then (alas may I) complaint my selfe? ?
Richard IIR2 I.ii.44Why then, I will. Farewell, old Gaunt.Why then I will: farewell old Gaunt.
Richard IIR2 I.iii.5Why then, the champions are prepared, and stayWhy then the Champions, are prepar'd, and stay
Richard IIR2 I.iii.7.3Green. When they are set, enter Mowbray, Duke ofThen Mowbray in Armor,
Richard IIR2 I.iii.50Then let us take a ceremonious leaveThen let vs take a ceremonious leaue
Richard IIR2 I.iii.91More than my dancing soul doth celebrateMore then my dancing soule doth celebrate
Richard IIR2 I.iii.123.1A long flourish. King Richard consults his nobles, thenA long Flourish.
Richard IIR2 I.iii.162Than an unstringed viol or a harp,Then an vnstringed Vyall, or a Harpe,
Richard IIR2 I.iii.172What is thy sentence then but speechless death,What is thy sentence then, but speechlesse death,
Richard IIR2 I.iii.176Then thus I turn me from my country's light,Then thus I turne me from my countries light
Richard IIR2 I.iii.235Why at our justice seemest thou then to lour?Why at our Iustice seem'st thou then to lowre?
Richard IIR2 I.iii.303Than when he bites, but lanceth not the sore.Then when it bites, but lanceth not the sore.
Richard IIR2 I.iii.306Then, England's ground, farewell! Sweet soil, adieu,Then Englands ground farewell: sweet soil adieu,
Richard IIR2 I.iv.7Which then blew bitterly against our faces,Which then grew bitterly against our face,
Richard IIR2 II.i.10Than they whom youth and ease have taught to glose.Then they whom youth and ease haue taught to glose,
Richard IIR2 II.i.11More are men's ends marked than their lives before.More are mens ends markt, then their liues before,
Richard IIR2 II.i.14Writ in remembrance more than things long past.Writ in remembrance, more then things long past;
Richard IIR2 II.i.18As praises, of whose taste the wise are fond;As praises of his state: then there are sound
Richard IIR2 II.i.27Then all too late comes counsel to be heardThat all too late comes counsell to be heard,
Richard IIR2 II.i.68How happy then were my ensuing death!How happy then were my ensuing death?
Richard IIR2 II.i.95Thy deathbed is no lesser than thy land,Thy death-bed is no lesser then the Land,
Richard IIR2 II.i.101Whose compass is no bigger than thy head,Whose compasse is no bigger then thy head,
Richard IIR2 II.i.103The waste is no whit lesser than thy land.The waste is no whit lesser then thy Land:
Richard IIR2 II.i.112Is it not more than shame to shame it so?Is it not more then shame, to shame it so?
Richard IIR2 II.i.137Convey me to my bed, then to my grave.Conuey me to my bed, then to my graue,
Richard IIR2 II.i.175Than was that young and princely gentleman.Then was that yong and Princely Gentleman,
Richard IIR2 II.i.197Let not tomorrow then ensue today.Let not to morrow then insue to day,
Richard IIR2 II.i.255More hath he spent in peace than they in wars.More hath he spent in peace, then they in warres.
Richard IIR2 II.i.277Then thus: I have from Le Port Blanc,Then thus: I haue from Port le Blan
Richard IIR2 II.i.291If then we shall shake off our slavish yoke,If then we shall shake off our slauish yoake,
Richard IIR2 II.ii.13More than with parting from my lord the King.More then with parting from my Lord the King.
Richard IIR2 II.ii.22Find shapes of grief more than himself to wail,Finde shapes of greefe, more then himselfe to waile,
Richard IIR2 II.ii.24Of what it is not. Then, thrice-gracious Queen,Of what it is not: then thrice-gracious Queene,
Richard IIR2 II.ii.25More than your lord's departure weep not – more is not seen,More then your Lords departure weep not, more's not seene;
Richard IIR2 II.ii.45Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipped?Then wherefore dost thou hope he is not shipt?
Richard IIR2 II.ii.132If judgement lie in them, then so do we,If iudgement lye in them, then so do we,
Richard IIR2 II.iii.16Than hope enjoyed. By this the weary lordsThen hope enioy'd: By this, the wearie Lords
Richard IIR2 II.iii.20Than your good words. But who comes here?Then your good words: but who comes here?
Richard IIR2 II.iii.35Then with directions to repair to Ravenspurgh.Then with direction to repaire to Rauenspurgh.
Richard IIR2 II.iii.40Then learn to know him now – this is the Duke.Then learne to know him now: this is the Duke.
Richard IIR2 II.iii.91But then more ‘ why ’ – why have they dared to marchBut more then why, why haue they dar'd to march
Richard IIR2 II.iii.102O then how quickly should this arm of mine,Oh then, how quickly should this Arme of mine,
Richard IIR2 II.iii.117I see old Gaunt alive. O then, my father,I see old Gaunt aliue. Oh then my Father,
Richard IIR2 III.i.28This and much more, much more than twice all this,This, and much more, much more then twice all this,
Richard IIR2 III.i.32Than Bolingbroke to England. Lords, farewell.Then Bullingbrooke to England.
Richard IIR2 III.ii.39Then thieves and robbers range abroad unseenThen Theeues and Robbers raunge abroad vnseene,
Richard IIR2 III.ii.44Then murders, treasons, and detested sins – Then Murthers, Treasons, and detested sinnes
Richard IIR2 III.ii.61A glorious angel. Then if angels fight,A glorious Angell: then if Angels fight,
Richard IIR2 III.ii.65Than this weak arm. Discomfort guides my tongueThen this weake arme; discomfort guides my tongue,
Richard IIR2 III.ii.92Than can my care-tuned tongue deliver him.Then can my care-tun'd tongue deliuer him.
Richard IIR2 III.ii.111With hard bright steel, and hearts harder than steel.With hard bright Steele, and hearts harder then Steele:
Richard IIR2 III.ii.120And all goes worse than I have power to tell.And all goes worse then I haue power to tell.
Richard IIR2 III.ii.132Three Judases, each one thrice worse than Judas – Three Iudasses, each one thrice worse then Iudas,
Richard IIR2 III.iii.15Mistake not, uncle, further than you should.Mistake not (Vnckle) farther then you should.
Richard IIR2 III.iii.16Take not, good cousin, further than you should,Take not (good Cousin) farther then you should.
Richard IIR2 III.iii.55With no less terror than the elementsWith no lesse terror then the Elements
Richard IIR2 III.iii.62.2then a flourish. King Richard appeareth on thethen a Flourish. Enter on the
Richard IIR2 III.iii.113Than for his lineal royalties, and to begThen for his Lineall Royalties, and to begge
Richard IIR2 III.iii.137As is my grief, or lesser than my name,As is my Griefe, or lesser then my Name,
Richard IIR2 III.iii.193Than my unpleased eye see your courtesy.Then my vnpleas'd Eye see your Courtesie.
Richard IIR2 III.iii.209.2Then I must not say no.Then I must not say, no.
Richard IIR2 III.iv.67What, think you then the King shall be deposed?What thinke you the King shall be depos'd?
Richard IIR2 III.iv.78Darest thou, thou little better thing than earth,Dar'st thou, thou little better thing then earth,
Richard IIR2 III.iv.91I speak no more than everyone doth know.I speake no more, then euery one doth know.
Richard IIR2 IV.i.6Then set before my face the Lord Aumerle.Then set before my face, the Lord Aumerle.
Richard IIR2 IV.i.17Than Bolingbroke's return to England,Then Bullingbrookes returne to England;
Richard IIR2 IV.i.62'Tis very true. You were in presence then,My Lord, / 'Tis very true: You were in presence then,
Richard IIR2 IV.i.119Of noble Richard! Then true noblesse wouldOf Noble Richard: then true Noblenesse would
Richard IIR2 IV.i.173Am I both priest and clerk? Well then, Amen.Am I both Priest, and Clarke? well then, Amen.
Richard IIR2 IV.i.271The commons will not then be satisfied.The Commons will not then be satisfy'd.
Richard IIR2 IV.i.302And then be gone and trouble you no more.And then be gone, and trouble you no more.
Richard IIR2 IV.i.304‘ Fair cousin ’? I am greater than a king;Faire Cousin? I am greater then a King:
Richard IIR2 IV.i.306Were then but subjects; being now a subjectWere then but subiects; being now a subiect,
Richard IIR2 IV.i.312Then give me leave to go.Then giue me leaue to goe.
Richard IIR2 V.i.58More than it is ere foul sin, gathering head,More then it is, ere foule sinne, gathering head,
Richard IIR2 V.i.73And then betwixt me and my married wife.And then betwixt me, and my marryed Wife.
Richard IIR2 V.i.85Then whither he goes, thither let me go.Then whither he goes, thither let me goe.
Richard IIR2 V.i.88Better far off than, near, be ne'er the nea'er.Better farre off, then neere, be ne're the neere.
Richard IIR2 V.ii.7Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bolingbroke,Then, as I said, the Duke, great Bullingbrooke,
Richard IIR2 V.ii.19Bare-headed, lower than his proud steed's neckBare-headed, lower then his proud Steeds necke,
Richard IIR2 V.ii.58.2No matter, then, who see it.No matter then who sees it,
Richard IIR2 V.ii.83.1Than my poor life must answer.Then my poore life must answer.
Richard IIR2 V.ii.100We'll keep him here. Then what is that to him?Wee'l keepe him heere: then what is that to him?
Richard IIR2 V.iii.35Then give me leave that I may turn the keyThen giue me leaue, that I may turne the key,
Richard IIR2 V.iii.108Our prayers do outpray his: then let them haveOur prayers do out-pray his, then let them haue
Richard IIR2 V.v.15And then again,& then again,
Richard IIR2 V.v.33Then treasons make me wish myself a beggar;Then Treason makes me wish my selfe a Beggar,
Richard IIR2 V.v.34And so I am. Then crushing penuryAnd so I am. Then crushing penurie,
Richard IIR2 V.v.36Then am I kinged again; and by and byThen am I king'd againe: and by and by,
Richard IIR2 V.vi.26More than thou hast, and with it joy thy life.More then thou hast, and with it ioy thy life:
Richard IIIR3 I.i.112Touches me deeper than you can imagine.Touches me deeper then you can imagine.
Richard IIIR3 I.i.153For then I'll marry Warwick's youngest daughter.For then, Ile marry Warwickes yongest daughter.
Richard IIIR3 I.i.162When they are gone, then must I count my gains.When they are gone, then must I count my gaines.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.19Than I can wish to wolves – spiders, toads,Then I can wish to Wolues, to Spiders, Toades,
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.28Than I am made by my young lord and thee!Then I am made by my young Lord, and thee.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.40Advance thy halberd higher than my breast,Aduance thy Halbert higher then my brest,
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.81Fairer than tongue can name thee, let me haveFairer then tongue can name thee, let me haue
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.83Fouler than heart can think thee, thou canst makeFouler then heart can thinke thee, / Thou can'st make
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.89.2Then say they were not slain.Then say they were not slaine:
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.91.2Why, then he is alive.Why then he is aliue.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.102Dost grant me, hedgehog? Then God grant me tooDo'st grant me Hedge-hogge, / Then God graunt me too
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.108For he was fitter for that place than earth.For he was fitter for that place then earth.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.141He lives, that loves thee better than he could.He liues, that loues thee better then he could.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.186Then bid me kill myself, and I will do it.Then bid me kill my selfe, and I will do it.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.195Then never man was true.Then neuer Man was true.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.197Say then my peace is made.Say then my Peace is made.
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.222.2'Tis more than you deserve;'Tis more then you deserue:
Richard IIIR3 I.ii.261And then return lamenting to my love.And then returne lamenting to my Loue.
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.59Whom God preserve better than you would wish! – (Whom God preserue better then you would wish)
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.93She may do more, sir, than denying that;She may do more sir then denying that:
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.95And then deny her aiding hand thereinAnd then deny her ayding hand therein,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.107Than a great queen, with this condition,Then a great Queene, with this condition,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.125Yea, and much better blood than his or thine.I and much better blood / Then his, or thine.
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.146We followed then our lord, our sovereign king;We follow'd then our Lord, our Soueraigne King,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.168Than death can yield me here by my abode.Then death can yeeld me here, by my abode.
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.176And then, to dry them, gav'st the Duke a cloutAnd then to dry them, gau'st the Duke a Clowt,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.178His curses then, from bitterness of soulHis Curses then, from bitternesse of Soule,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.186Northumberland, then present, wept to see it.Northumberland, then present, wept to see it.
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.195Why then, give way, dull clouds, to my quick curses!Why then giue way dull Clouds to my quick Curses.
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.219And then hurl down their indignationAnd then hurle downe their indignation
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.234I cry thee mercy then; for I did thinkI cry thee mercie then: for I did thinke,
Richard IIIR3 I.iii.333But then I sigh, and, with a piece of Scripture,But then I sigh, and with a peece of Scripture,
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.44O then began the tempest to my soul!O then, began the Tempest to my Soule.
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.52And so he vanished. Then came wandering byAnd so he vanish'd. Then came wand'ring by,
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.90'Tis better, sir, than to be tedious.'Tis better (Sir) then to be tedious:
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.106Why, then he'll say we stabbed himWhy then hee'l say, we stab'd him
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.157of thy sword, and then throw him into the malmsey-buttof thy Sword, and then throw him into the Malmesey-Butte
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.200That thou shalt do no murder. Will you thenThat thou shalt do no murther. Will you then
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.223Who made thee then a bloody ministerWho made thee then a bloudy minister,
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.234Than Edward will for tidings of my death.Then Edward will for tydings of my death.
Richard IIIR3 I.iv.286For this will out, and then I must not stay.For this will out, and then I must not stay.
Richard IIIR3 II.i.73More than the infant that is born tonight.More then the Infant that is borne to night:
Richard IIIR3 II.i.95Deserve not worse than wretched Clarence did,Deserue not worse then wretched Clarence did,
Richard IIIR3 II.i.100Then say at once what is it thou requests.Then say at once, what is it thou requests.
Richard IIIR3 II.ii.12Then you conclude, my grandam, he is dead?Then you conclude, (my Grandam) he is dead:
Richard IIIR3 II.ii.141Then be it so; and go we to determineThen be it so, and go we to determine
Richard IIIR3 II.ii.154Toward Ludlow then, for we'll not stay behind.Toward London then, for wee'l not stay behinde.
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.9Then, masters, look to see a troublous world.Then Masters looke to see a troublous world.
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.15No doubt shall then, and till then, govern well.No doubt shall then, and till then gouerne well.
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.19For then this land was famously enrichedFor then this Land was famously enrich'd
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.20With politic grave counsel; then the KingWith politike graue Counsell; then the King
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.33When great leaves fall, the winter is at hand;When great leaues fall, then Winter is at hand;
Richard IIIR3 II.iii.37'Tis more than we deserve or I expect.'Tis more then we deserue, or I expect.
Richard IIIR3 II.iv.12More than my brother. ‘ Ay,’ quoth my uncle Gloucester,More then my Brother. I, quoth my Vnkle Glouster,
Richard IIIR3 II.iv.25To touch his growth nearer than he touched mine.To touch his growth, neerer then he toucht mine.
Richard IIIR3 III.i.10Than of his outward show, which, God He knows,Then of his outward shew, which God he knowes,
Richard IIIR3 III.i.53Then, taking him from thence that is not there,Then taking him from thence, that is not there,
Richard IIIR3 III.i.66Then where you please, and shall be thought most fitThen where you please, and shall be thought most fit
Richard IIIR3 III.i.107Then he is more beholding to you than I.Then he is more beholding to you, then I.
Richard IIIR3 III.i.115A greater gift than that I'll give my cousin.A greater gift then that, Ile giue my Cousin.
Richard IIIR3 III.i.118O, then I see you will part but with light gifts!O then I see, you will part but with light gifts,
Richard IIIR3 III.i.167What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not he?What think'st thou then of Stanley? Will not hee?
Richard IIIR3 III.i.169Well then, no more but this: go, gentle Catesby,Well then, no more but this: / Goe gentle Catesby,
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.9And then?What then?
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.10Then certifies your lordship that this nightThen certifies your Lordship, that this Night
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.92Than some that have accused them wear their hats.Then some that haue accus'd them, weare their Hats.
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.98Than when I met thee last where now we meet.Then when thou met'st me last, where now we meet:
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.99Then was I going prisoner to the TowerThen was I going Prisoner to the Tower,
Richard IIIR3 III.ii.103And I in better state than e'er I was.And I in better state then ere I was.
Richard IIIR3 III.iii.17Then cursed she Richard, then cursed she Buckingham,Then curs'd shee Richard, / Thencurs'd shee Buckingham,
Richard IIIR3 III.iii.18Then cursed she Hastings. O, remember, God,Then curs'd shee Hastings. Oh remember God,
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.6Tomorrow then I judge a happy day.To morrow then I iudge a happie day.
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.11He knows no more of mine than I of yours;He knowes no more of mine, then I of yours,
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.12Or I of his, my lord, than you of mine.Or I of his, my Lord, then you of mine:
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.29Than my Lord Hastings no man might be bolder.Then my Lord Hastings, no man might be bolder,
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.52Can lesser hide his love or hate than he,Can lesser hide his loue, or hate, then hee,
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.67Then be your eyes the witness of their evil.Then be your eyes the witnesse of their euill.
Richard IIIR3 III.iv.97Which we more hunt for than the grace of God!Which we more hunt for, then the grace of God!
Richard IIIR3 III.v.3And then again begin, and stop again,And then againe begin, and stop againe,
Richard IIIR3 III.v.87My princely father, then had wars in France,My Princely Father, then had Warres in France,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.10As being got, your father then in France,As being got, your Father then in France,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.31Then he was urged to tell my tale again:Then he was vrg'd to tell my Tale againe:
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.43Will not the Mayor then and his brethren come?Will not the Maior then, and his Brethren, come?
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.67No less importing than our general good,No lesse importing then our generall good,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.116Know then it is your fault that you resignKnow then, it is your fault, that you resigne
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.149Then, on the other side, I checked my friends.Then on the other side I check'd my friends.
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.151And then, in speaking, not to incur the last – And then in speaking, not to incurre the last,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.162Than in my greatness covet to be hidThen in my Greatnesse couet to be hid,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.194Then, good my lord, take to your royal selfThen good, my Lord, take to your Royall selfe
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.238Then I salute you with this royal title – Then I salute you with this Royall Title,
Richard IIIR3 III.vii.243Tomorrow then we will attend your grace,To morrow then we will attend your Grace,
Richard IIIR3 IV.i.8No farther than the Tower, and, as I guess,No farther then the Tower, and as I guesse,
Richard IIIR3 IV.i.24Then bring me to their sights. I'll bear thy blameThen bring me to their sights, Ile beare thy blame,
Richard IIIR3 IV.i.69And that dear saint which then I weeping followed – And that deare Saint, which then I weeping follow'd:
Richard IIIR3 IV.i.76Than thou hast made me by my dear lord's death!’Then thou hast made me, by my deare Lords death.
Richard IIIR3 IV.i.88No more than with my soul I mourn for yours.No more, then with my soule I mourne for yours.
Richard IIIR3 IV.ii.61Murder her brothers, and then marry her – Murther her Brothers, and then marry her,
Richard IIIR3 IV.ii.71Why, there thou hast it! Two deep enemies,Why then thou hast it: two deepe enemies,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iii.26Beget your happiness, be happy then,Beget your happinesse, be happy then,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iii.35.1Farewell till then.Farewell till then.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iii.50Than Buckingham and his rash-levied strength.Then Buckingham and his rash leuied Strength.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iii.54Then fiery expedition be my wing,Then fierie expedition be my wing,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.33Then would I hide my bones, not rest them here.Then would I hide my bones, not rest them heere,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.82I called thee then vain flourish of my fortune;I call'd thee then, vaine flourish of my fortune:
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.83I called thee then poor shadow, painted queen,I call'd thee then, poore Shadow, painted Queen,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.120Think that thy babes were sweeter than they wereThinke that thy Babes were sweeter then they were,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.121And he that slew them fouler than he is.And he that slew them fowler then he is:
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.132If so, then be not tongue-tied: go with me,If so then, be not Tongue-ty'd: go with me,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.157Then patiently hear my impatience.Then patiently heare my impatience.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.160.2Do then, but I'll not hear.Do then, but Ile not heare.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.190Than all the complete armour that thou wearest!Then all the compleat Armour that thou wear'st.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.239Than ever you or yours were by me harmed!Then euer you and yours by me were harm'd.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.255Last longer telling than thy kindness' date.Last longer telling then thy kindnesse date.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.256Then know that from my soul I love thy daughter.Then know, That from my Soule, I loue thy Daughter.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.265Well then, who dost thou mean shall be her king?Well then, who dost yu meane shallbe her King.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.273‘ Edward ’ and ‘ York ’; then haply she will weep.Edward and Yorke, then haply will she weepe:
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.289Nay, then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee,Nay then indeed she cannot choose but hate thee
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.300Than is the doting title of a mother;Then is the doting Title of a Mother;
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.325Go then, my mother; to thy daughter go;Go then (my Mother) to thy Daughter go,
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.359Then plainly to tell her my loving tale.Then plainly to her, tell my louing tale.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.373Swear then by something that thou hast not wronged.Sweare then by something, that thou hast not wrong'd.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.374.1Then by myself –Then by my Selfe.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.377.1Why then, by God – Why then, by Heauen.
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.473Then tell me, what makes he upon the seas?Then tell me, what makes he vpon the Seas?
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.479Where is thy power then to beat him back?Where is thy Power then, to beat him back?
Richard IIIR3 IV.iv.494Go then, and muster men. But leave behindGoe then, and muster men: but leaue behind
Richard IIIR3 V.i.12Why, then All Souls' Day is my body's doomsday.Why then Al-soules day, is my bodies doomsday
Richard IIIR3 V.ii.22All for our vantage. Then in God's name march!All for our vantage, then in Gods name march,
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.3My heart is ten times lighter than my looks.My heart is ten times lighter then my lookes.
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.50What, is my beaver easier than it was?What, is my Beauer easier then it was?
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.186Then fly. What, from myself? Great reason why – Then flye; What from my Selfe? Great reason: why?
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.219Than can the substance of ten thousand soldiersThen can the substance of ten thousand Souldiers
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.237Why, then 'tis time to arm and give direction.Why then 'tis time to Arme, and giue direction.
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.238More than I have said, loving countrymen,More then I haue said, louing Countrymen,
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.245Had rather have us win than him they follow.Had rather haue vs win, then him they follow.
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.254Then if you fight against God's enemy,Then if you fight against Gods Enemy,
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.264Then in the name of God and all these rights,Then in the name of God and all these rights,
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.274He said the truth. And what said Surrey then?He said the truth: and what said Surrey then?
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.279Then he disdains to shine; for by the bookThen he disdaines to shine: for by the Booke
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.287More than to Richmond? For the selfsame heavenMore then to Richmond? For the selfe-same Heauen
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.314If not to heaven, then hand in hand to hell.If not to heauen, then hand in hand to Hell.
Richard IIIR3 V.iii.315What shall I say more than I have inferred?What shall I say more then I haue inferr'd?
Richard IIIR3 V.iv.2The King enacts more wonders than a man,The King enacts more wonders then a man,
Richard IIIR3 V.v.18And then, as we have ta'en the sacrament,And then as we haue tane the Sacrament,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.i.2No. For then we should be colliers.No, for then we should be Colliars.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.i.127Which then most sought where most might not be found,Which then most sought, wher most might not be found:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.i.176Why then, O brawling love, O loving hate,Why then, O brawling loue, O louing hate,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.i.217Then she hath sworn that she will still live chaste?Then she hath sworne, that she will still liue chast?
Romeo and JulietRJ I.ii.12Younger than she are happy mothers made.Younger then she, are happy mothers made.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.ii.54Not mad, but bound more than a madman is;Not mad, but bound more then a mad man is:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.ii.88Maintains such falsehood, then turn tears to fires;Maintaines such falshood, then turne teares to fire:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.ii.91One fairer than my love? The all-seeing sunOne fairer then my loue: the all-seeing Sun
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.27For I had then laid wormwood to my dug,for I had then laid Worme-wood to my Dug
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.29My lord and you were then at Mantua.my Lord and you were then at Mantua,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.37For then she could stand high-lone. Nay, by th' rood,for then she could stand alone, nay bi'th' roode
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.40And then my husband – God be with his soul!& then my Husband God be with his soule,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.70Well, think of marriage now. Younger than you,Well thinke of marriage now, yonger then you
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.74That you are now a maid. Thus then in brief:That you are now a Maide, thus then in briefe:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iii.100Than your consent gives strength to make it fly.Then your consent giues strength to make flye.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.53O, then I see Queen Mab hath been with you.O then I see Queene Mab hath beene with you:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.55In shape no bigger than an agate stonein shape no bigger then Agat-stone,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.71Through lovers' brains, and then they dream of love;through Louers braines: and then they dreame of Loue.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.78And then dreams he of smelling out a suit.& then dreames he of smelling out a sute:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.81Then he dreams of another benefice.then he dreames of another Benefice.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.83And then dreams he of cutting foreign throats,& then dreames he of cutting Forraine throats,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.85Of healths five fathom deep; and then anonOf Healths fiue Fadome deepe, and then anon
Romeo and JulietRJ I.iv.100And more inconstant than the wind, who woosAnd more inconstant then the wind, who wooes
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.38Some five-and-twenty years; and then we masked.Some fiue and twenty yeares, and then we Maskt.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.103O, then, dear saint, let lips do what hands do!O then deare Saint, let lips do what hands do,
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.106Then move not while my prayer's effect I take.Then moue not while my prayers effect I take:
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.108Then have my lips the sin that they have took.Then haue my lips the sin that they haue tooke.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.123Is it e'en so? Why then, I thank you all.Is it e'ne so? why then I thanke you all.
Romeo and JulietRJ I.v.125More torches here! Come on then, let's to bed.More Torches here: come on, then let's to bed.
Romeo and JulietRJ II.i.41.2Go then, for 'tis in vainGo then, for 'tis in vaine
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.6That thou her maid art far more fair than she.That thou her Maid art far more faire then she:
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.72Than twenty of their swords! Look thou but sweet,Then twenty of their Swords, looke thou but sweete,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.78Than death prorogued, wanting of thy love.Then death proroged wanting of thy Loue.
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.101Than those that have more cunning to be strange.Then those that haue coying to be strange,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.162And make her airy tongue more hoarse than mineAnd make her ayrie tongue more hoarse, then
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.169I will not fail. 'Tis twenty years till then.I will not faile, 'tis twenty yeares till then,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.ii.177And yet no farther than a wanton's bird,And yet no further then a wantons Bird,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iii.37Or if not so, then here I hit it right –,Or if not so, then here I hit it right.
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iii.43That's my good son! But where hast thou been then?That's my good Son, but wher hast thou bin then?
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iii.53Then plainly know my heart's dear love is setThen plainly know my hearts deare Loue is set,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iii.63So soon forsaken? Young men's love then liesSo soone forsaken? young mens Loue then lies
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iii.75And art thou changed? Pronounce this sentence then:And art thou chang'd? pronounce this sentence then,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.19More than Prince of Cats, I can tell you. O,More then Prince of Cats. Oh
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.59Why, then is my pump well-flowered.Why then is my Pump well flowr'd.
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.72thy wits than, I am sure, I have in my whole five. Was Ithy wits, then I am sure I haue in my whole fiue. Was I
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.80And is it not, then, well served in to a sweetAnd is it not well seru'd into a Sweet-
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.86Why, is not this better now than groaning forWhy is not this better now, then groning for
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.118when you have found him than he was when you soughtwhen you haue found him, then he was when you sought
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.145talk and will speak more in a minute than he will standtalke, and will speake more in a minute, then he will stand
Romeo and JulietRJ II.iv.148down, an 'a were lustier than he is, and twenty suchdowne, & a were lustier then he is, and twentie such
Romeo and JulietRJ II.v.5Which ten times faster glides than the sun's beams,Which ten times faster glides then the Sunnes beames,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.v.34Is longer than the tale thou dost excuse.Is longer then the tale thou dost excuse.
Romeo and JulietRJ II.v.40his face be better than any man's, yet his leg excels allhis face be better then any mans, yet his legs excels all
Romeo and JulietRJ II.v.68Then hie you hence to Friar Laurence' cell.Then high you hence to Frier Lawrence Cell,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.vi.7Then love-devouring death do what he dare – Then Loue-deuouring death do what he dare,
Romeo and JulietRJ II.vi.26To blazon it, then sweeten with thy breathTo blason it, then sweeten with thy breath
Romeo and JulietRJ II.vi.30Conceit, more rich in matter than in words,Conceit more rich in matter then in words,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.i.18hair less in his beard than thou hast. Thou wilt quarrelhaire lesse in his beard, then thou hast: thou wilt quarrell
Romeo and JulietRJ III.i.60No better term than this: thou art a villain.No better terme then this: Thou art a Villaine.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.i.68But love thee better than thou canst deviseBut lou'd thee better then thou can'st deuise:
Romeo and JulietRJ III.i.165‘ Hold, friends! Friends, part!’ and swifter than his tongueHold Friends, Friends part, and swifter then his tongue,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.i.169Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled.Of stout Mercutio, and then Tybalt fled.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.ii.19Whiter than new snow upon a raven's back.Whiter then new Snow vpon a Rauens backe:
Romeo and JulietRJ III.ii.47Than the death-darting eye of cockatrice.Then the death-darting eye of Cockatrice,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.ii.67Then, dreadful trumpet, sound the General Doom!Then dreadfull Trumpet sound the generall doome,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.ii.107All this is comfort. Wherefore weep I then?All this is comfort, wherefore weepe I then?
Romeo and JulietRJ III.ii.108Some word there was, worser than Tybalt's death,Some words there was worser then Tybalts death
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.9What less than doomsday is the Prince's doom?What lesse then Doomesday, / Is the Princes Doome?
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.14Much more than death. Do not say ‘ banishment.’Much more then death: do not say banishment.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.20And world's exile is death. Then ‘ banished ’And worlds exile is death. Then banished,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.35In carrion flies than Romeo. They may seizeIn carrion Flies, then Romeo: they may seaze
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.53Thou fond mad man, hear me a little speak.Then fond Mad man, heare me speake.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.62O, then I see that madmen have no ears.O then I see, that Mad men haue no eares.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.69Then mightst thou speak; then mightst thou tear thy hair,Then mightest thou speake, / Then mightest thou teare thy hayre,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.81.2Welcome then.Welcome then.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.100And now falls on her bed, and then starts up,And now fals on her bed, and then starts vp,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.101And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries,And Tybalt calls, and then on Romeo cries,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.102.1And then down falls again.And then downe falls againe.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.149For then thou canst not pass to Mantua,For then thou canst not passe to Mantua,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iii.154Than thou wentest forth in lamentation.Then thou went'st forth in lamentation.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.iv.30Well, get you gone. A' Thursday be it, then.Well, get you gone, a Thursday, be it then:
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.23I have more care to stay than will to go.I haue more care to stay, then will to go:
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.41Then, window, let day in, and let life out.Then window let day in, and let life out.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.63For then I hope thou wilt not keep him longFor then I hope thou wilt not keepe him long,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.88Then weep no more. I'll send to one in Mantua,Then weepe no more, Ile send to one in Mantua,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.92And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied.And then I hope thou wilt be satisfied.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.123Rather than Paris. These are news indeed!Rather then Paris. These are newes indeed.
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.184And then to have a wretched puling fool,And then to haue a wretched puling foole,
Romeo and JulietRJ III.v.217Then, since the case so stands as now it doth,Then since the case so stands as now it doth,
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.28Being spoke behind your back, than to your face.Benig spoke behind your backe, then to your face.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.32Thou wrongest it more than tears with that report.Thou wrong'st it more then teares with that report.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.43Till then, adieu, and keep this holy kiss.Till then adue, and keepe this holy kisse.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.71If, rather than to marry County Paris,If rather then to marrie Countie Paris
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.73Then is it likely thou wilt undertakeThen is it likely thou wilt vndertake
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.77O bid me leap, rather than marry Paris,Oh bid me leape, rather then marrie Paris,
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.89Hold, then. Go home, be merry, give consentHold then: goe home, be merrie, giue consent,
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.93Take thou this vial, being then in bed,Take thou this Violl being then in bed,
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.106And then awake as from a pleasant sleep.And then awake, as from a pleasant sleepe.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.i.109Then, as the manner of our country is,Then as the manner of our country is,
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.iii.22Shall I be married then tomorrow morning?Shall I be married then to morrow morning?
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.iii.33Shall I not then be stifled in the vault,Shall I not then be stifled in the Vault?
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.108You will not then?You will not then?
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.110I will then give it you soundly.I will then giue it you soundly.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.114Then I will give you theThen will I giue you the
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.116Then will I lay the serving-creature's dagger onThen will I lay the seruing Creatures Dagger on
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.122Then have at you with my wit! I will dry-beat youThen haue at you with my wit. / I will drie-beate you
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.127Then music with her silver sound ’ –then Musicke with her siluer sound.
Romeo and JulietRJ IV.v.140Then music with her silver soundThen Musicke with her siluer sound,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.i.17Then she is well, and nothing can be ill.Then she is well, and nothing can be ill.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.i.24Is it e'en so? Then I defy you, stars!Is it euen so? / Then I denie you Starres.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.i.74Then be not poor, but break it and take this.Then be not poore, but breake it, and take this.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.i.82Than these poor compounds that thou mayst not sell.Then these poore compounds that thou maiest not sell.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.ii.13Who bare my letter, then, to Romeo?Who bare my Letter then to Romeo?
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.7But thou shalt hear it. Whistle then to me,But thou shalt heare it: whistle then to me,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.39Than empty tigers or the roaring sea.Then emptie Tygers, or the roaring Sea.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.55Can vengeance be pursued further than death?Can vengeance be pursued further then death?
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.64By heaven, I love thee better than myself,By heauen I loue thee better then my selfe,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.70Wilt thou provoke me? Then have at thee, boy!Wilt thou prouoke me? Then haue at thee Boy.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.99Than with that hand that cut thy youth in twainThen with that hand that cut thy youth in twaine,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.135Stay then; I'll go alone. Fear comes upon me.Stay, then Ile go alone, feares comes vpon me.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.153A greater power than we can contradictA greater power then we can contradict
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.169Yea, noise? Then I'll be brief. O happy dagger!Yea noise? Then ile be briefe. O happy Dagger.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.219And then will I be general of your woesAnd then will I be generall of your woes,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.228Then say at once what thou dost know in this.Then say at once, what thou dost know in this?
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.239To County Paris. Then comes she to meTo Countie Paris. Then comes she to me,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.243Then gave I her – so tutored by my art –Then gaue I her (so Tutor'd by my Art)
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.252Returned my letter back. Then all aloneReturn'd my Letter backe. Then all alone,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.262But then a noise did scare me from the tomb,But then, a noyse did scarre me from the Tombe,
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.273And then in post he came from MantuaAnd then in poste he came from Mantua
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.285And then I ran away to call the Watch.And then I ran away to call the Watch.
Romeo and JulietRJ V.iii.310Than this of Juliet and her Romeo.Then this of Iuliet, and her Romeo.
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.1.39Would not the beggar then forget himself?Would not the begger then forget himselfe?
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.1.43Then take him up, and manage well the jest.Then take him vp, and manage well the iest:
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.1.69He is no less than what we say he is.He is no lesse then what we say he is.
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.1.116And then with kind embracements, tempting kisses,And then with kinde embracements, tempting kisses,
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.1.121No better than a poor and loathsome beggar.No better then a poore and loathsome begger:
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.8what raiment I'll wear, for I have no more doublets thanwhat raiment Ile weare, for I haue no more doublets then
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.9backs, no more stockings than legs, nor no more shoesbackes: no more stockings then legges: nor no more shooes
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.10than feet – nay, sometimes more feet than shoes, or suchthen feet, nay sometime more feete then shooes, or such
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.37Softer and sweeter than the lustful bedSofter and sweeter then the lustfull bed
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.47As breathed stags, ay, fleeter than the roe.As breathed Stags: I fleeter then the Roe.
The Taming of the ShrewTS induction.2.62Than any woman in this waning age.Then any woman in this waining age.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.i.136his youngest free for a husband, and then have to'this yongest free for a husband, and then haue too t
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.i.174Nay, then 'tis time to stir him from his trance.Nay, then 'tis time to stirre him frõ his trance:
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.i.198For man or master. Then it follows thus – For man or master: then it followes thus;
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.i.240When I am alone, why then I am Tranio,When I am alone, why then I am Tranio:
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.14And then I know after who comes by the worst.And then I know after who comes by the worst.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.35Then had not Grumio come by the worst.then had not Grumio come by the worst.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.50To seek their fortunes farther than at home,To seeke their fortunes farther then at home,
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.58Petruchio, shall I then come roundly to theePetruchio, shall I then come roundly to thee,
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.75If wealthily, then happily in Padua.If wealthily, then happily in Padua.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.90That, were my state far worser than it is,That were my state farre worser then it is,
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.113it that she shall have no more eyes to see withal than ait, that shee shal haue no more eies to see withall then a
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.150For she is sweeter than perfume itselfFor she is sweeter then perfume it selfe
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.156Than you, unless you were a scholar, sir.Then you; vnlesse you were a scholler sir.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.239And were his daughter fairer than she is,And were his daughter fairer then she is,
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.242Then well one more may fair Bianca have.Then well one more may faire Bianca haue;
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.255And let it be more than Alcides' twelve.And let it be more then Alcides twelue.
The Taming of the ShrewTS I.ii.261The younger then is free, and not before.The yonger then is free, and not before.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.12Which I could fancy more than any other.Which I could fancie, more then any other.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.16O then, belike, you fancy riches more.Oh then belike you fancie riches more,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.19Nay then you jest, and now I well perceiveNay then you iest, and now I wel perceiue
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.22If that be jest, then all the rest was so.If that be iest, then all the rest was so.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.78been more kindly beholding to you than any, freely givebeene / More kindely beholding to you then any: / Freely giue
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.101If you accept them, then their worth is great.If you accept them, then their worth is great:
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.112And then to dinner. You are passing welcome,And then to dinner: you are passing welcome,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.118Which I have bettered rather than decreased.Which I haue bettered rather then decreast,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.119Then tell me, if I get your daughter's love,Then tell me, if I get your daughters loue,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.147Why then, thou canst not break her to the lute?Why then thou canst not break her to the Lute?
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.161I love her ten times more than e'er I did.I loue her ten times more then ere I did,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.170Say that she rail, why then I'll tell her plainSay that she raile, why then Ile tell her plaine,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.175Then I'll commend her volubility,Then Ile commend her volubility,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.211My remedy is then to pluck it out.My remedy is then to plucke it out.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.221And if no gentleman, why then no arms.And if no Gentleman, why then no armes.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.230.1Then show it me.Then shew it me.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.249As hazel-nuts and sweeter than the kernels.As hazle nuts, and sweeter then the kernels:
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.255And then let Kate be chaste and Dian sportful.And then let Kate be chaste, and Dian sportfull.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.294Is this your speeding? Nay then, good night our part.Is this your speeding? nay thẽ godnight our part.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.329Than words can witness or your thoughts can guess.Then words can witnesse, or your thoughts can guesse.
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.349To house or housekeeping. Then at my farmTo house or house-keeping: then at my farme
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.371Than three great argosies, besides two galliassesThen three great Argosies, besides two Galliasses
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.375And she can have no more than all I have.And she can haue no more then all I haue,
The Taming of the ShrewTS II.i.377Why, then the maid is mine from all the worldWhy then the maid is mine from all the world
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.i.6Then give me leave to have prerogative,Then giue me leaue to haue prerogatiue,
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.i.13Then give me leave to read philosophy,Then giue me leaue to read Philosophy,
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.i.67Than hath been taught by any of my trade.Then hath beene taught by any of my trade,
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.i.84Faith, mistress, then I have no cause to stay.Faith Mistresse then I haue no cause to stay.
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.37What then?What then?
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.82Is more than one,is more then one,
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.134Of greater sums than I have promised.Of greater summes then I haue promised,
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.153Curster than she? Why, 'tis impossible.Curster then she, why 'tis impossible.
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.191You would entreat me rather go than stay.You would intreat me rather goe then stay:
The Taming of the ShrewTS III.ii.206Nay then,Nay then,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.i.9the weather, a taller man than I will take cold.the weather, a taller man then I will take cold:
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.i.161Than feed it with such overroasted flesh.Then feede it with such ouer-rosted flesh:
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.i.178For then she never looks upon her lure.For then she neuer lookes vpon her lure.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.ii.49.2Then we are rid of Licio.Then we are rid of Lisio.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.ii.71Take in your love, and then let me alone.Take me your loue, and then let me alone.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.ii.75But then up farther, and as far as Rome,But then vp farther, and as farre as Rome,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.ii.88Alas, sir, it is worse for me than so!Alas sir, it is worse for me then so,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.ii.115Then go with me to make the matter good.Then go with me, to make the matter good,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.11And that which spites me more than all these wants,And that which spights me more then all these wants,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.26Why then, the beef, and let the mustard rest.Why then the Beefe, and let the Mustard rest.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.27Nay then, I will not. You shall have the mustard,Nay then I wil not, you shal haue the Mustard
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.29Then both, or one, or anything thou wilt.Then both or one, or any thing thou wilt.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.30Why then, the mustard without the beef.Why then the Mustard without the beefe.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.42What, not a word? Nay, then, thou lov'st it not,What, not a word? Nay then, thou lou'st it not:
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.72.1And not till then.And not till then.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.79And rather than it shall, I will be freeAnd rather then it shall, I will be free,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.149God-a-mercy, Grumio, then he shall have noGod-a-mercie Grumio, then hee shall haue no
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.157O sir, the conceit is deeper than you think for.Oh sir, the conceit is deeper then you think for:
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.171What, is the jay more precious than the larkWhat is the Iay more precious then the Larke?
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iii.173Or is the adder better than the eelOr is the Adder better then the Eele,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.33No worse than I, upon some agreementNo worse then I, vpon some agreement
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.43And therefore if you say no more than this,And therefore if you say no more then this,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.48I thank you, sir. Where then do you know bestI thanke you sir, where then doe you know best
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.55Then at my lodging, an it like you.Then at my lodging, and it like you,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.79Then thus – Baptista is safe, talking with theThen thus: Baptista is safe talking with the
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.84And then?And then.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.iv.102She will be pleased, then wherefore should I doubt?She will be pleas'd, then wherefore should I doubt:
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.v.17Nay, then you lie. It is the blessed sun.Nay then you lye: it is the blessed Sunne.
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.v.18Then, God be blessed, it is the blessed sun.Then God be blest, it in the blessed sun,
The Taming of the ShrewTS IV.v.79Then hast thou taught Hortensio to be untoward.Then hast thou taught Hortentio to be vntoward.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.i.5and then come back to my master's as soon as I can.and then come backe to my mistris as soone as I can.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.i.94Then thou wert best say that I am not Lucentio.Then thou wert best saie that I am not Lucentio.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.i.118Then pardon him, sweet father, for my sake.Then pardon him sweete Father for my sake.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.i.136Why, then, let's home again.Why then let's home againe:
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.i.141Better once than never, for never too late.Better once then neuer, for neuer to late.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.ii.17Then never trust me if I be afeard.Then neuer trust me if I be affeard.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.ii.47And then pursue me as you draw your bow.And then pursue me as you draw your Bow.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.ii.74.1A hundred then.A hundred then.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.ii.87.1Nay, then she must needs come.nay then shee must needes come.
The Taming of the ShrewTS V.ii.175Then vail your stomachs, for it is no boot,Then vale your stomackes, for it is no boote,
The TempestTem I.i.20None that I more love than myself. You areNone that I more loue then my selfe. You are
The TempestTem I.i.36A plague upon this howling! They are louder than theA plague --- vpon this howling: they are lowder then the
The TempestTem I.i.42Work you, then.Worke you then.
The TempestTem I.i.44We are less afraid to be drowned than thou art.we are lesse afraid to be drownde, then thou art.
The TempestTem I.i.46were no stronger than a nutshell and as leaky as anwere no stronger then a Nutt-shell, and as leaky as an
The TempestTem I.ii.20Than Prospero, master of a full poor cell,Then Prospero, Master of a full poore cell,
The TempestTem I.ii.40I do not think thou canst, for then thou wast notI doe not thinke thou canst, for then thou was't not
The TempestTem I.ii.45And rather like a dream than an assuranceAnd rather like a dreame, then an assurance
The TempestTem I.ii.117Mark his condition and th' event; then tell meMarke his condition, and th' euent, then tell me
The TempestTem I.ii.133I, not remembering how I cried out then,I not remembring how I cride out then
The TempestTem I.ii.136And then I'll bring thee to the present businessAnd then I'le bring thee to the present businesse
The TempestTem I.ii.152.1Was I then to you!Was I then to you?
The TempestTem I.ii.162Out of his charity, who being then appointedOut of his Charity, (who being then appointed
The TempestTem I.ii.173Than other princess can, that have more timeThen other Princesse can, that haue more time
The TempestTem I.ii.201Then meet and join. Jove's lightnings, the precursorsThen meete, and ioyne. Ioues Lightning, the precursers
The TempestTem I.ii.212Then all afire with me. The King's son Ferdinand,Then all a fire with me the Kings sonne Ferdinand
The TempestTem I.ii.213With hair upstaring – then like reeds, not hair – With haire vp-staring (then like reeds, not haire)
The TempestTem I.ii.219But fresher than before; and as thou bad'st me,But fresher then before: and as thou badst me,
The TempestTem I.ii.271As thou report'st thyself, wast then her servant.As thou reportst thy selfe, was then her seruant,
The TempestTem I.ii.281As fast as millwheels strike. Then was this island – As fast as Mill-wheeles strike: Then was this Island
The TempestTem I.ii.330.1Than bees that made 'em.Then Bees that made 'em.
The TempestTem I.ii.336That burn by day and night. And then I loved thee,That burne by day, and night: and then I lou'd thee
The TempestTem I.ii.362Deserved more than a prison.Deseru'd more then a prison.
The TempestTem I.ii.376And then take hands.and then take hands:
The TempestTem I.ii.483Are then most humble. I have no ambitionAre then most humble: I haue no ambition
The TempestTem I.ii.498Than he appears by speech. This is unwontedThen he appeares by speech: this is vnwonted
The TempestTem I.ii.500As mountain winds; but then exactly doAs mountaine windes; but then exactly do
The TempestTem II.i.8Can speak like us. Then wisely, good sir, weighCan speake like vs: then wisely (good Sir) weigh
The TempestTem II.i.22truer than you purposed.truer then you purpos'd.
The TempestTem II.i.23You have taken it wiselier than I meant youYou haue taken it wiselier then I meant you
The TempestTem II.i.66freshness and glosses, being rather new-dyed thanfreshnesse and glosses, being rather new dy'de then
The TempestTem II.i.88His word is more than the miraculous harp.His word is more then the miraculous Harpe.
The TempestTem II.i.136Than we bring men to comfort them.Then we bring men to comfort them:
The TempestTem II.i.188We would so, and then go a-bat-fowling.We would so, and then go a Bat-fowling.
The TempestTem II.i.204Doth it not then our eyelids sink? I findDoth it not then our eye-lids sinke? I finde
The TempestTem II.i.223I am more serious than my custom. YouI am more serious then my custome: you
The TempestTem II.i.248.3Then, tell me,Then tell me,
The TempestTem II.i.267Than now they are. There be that can rule NaplesThen now they are: There be that can rule Naples
The TempestTem II.i.278Much feater than before. My brother's servantsMuch feater then before: My Brothers seruants
The TempestTem II.i.279Were then my fellows. Now they are my men.Were then my fellowes, now they are my men.
The TempestTem II.i.286No better than the earth he lies upon,No better then the earth he lies vpon,
The TempestTem II.i.311.1Then let us both be sudden.Then let vs both be sodaine.
The TempestTem II.ii.10And after bite me; then like hedgehogs, whichAnd after bite me: then like Hedg-hogs, which
The TempestTem II.ii.45.1He drinks and then singsDrinkes. Sings.
The TempestTem II.ii.53Then to sea, boys, and let her go hang!Then to Sea Boyes, and let her goe hang.
The TempestTem II.ii.124Here! Swear, then, how thou escaped'st.Heere: sweare then how thou escap'dst.
The TempestTem II.ii.150Come on then. Down, and swear!Come on then: downe and sweare.
The TempestTem III.i.8Ten times more gentle than her father's crabbed,Ten times more gentle, then her Father's crabbed;
The TempestTem III.i.27Than you should such dishonour undergo,Then you should such dishonor vndergoe,
The TempestTem III.i.51More that I may call men than you, good friend,More that I may call men, then you good friend,
The TempestTem III.i.62This wooden slavery than to sufferThis wodden slauerie, then to suffer
The TempestTem III.i.87.2My husband, then?My husband then?
The TempestTem III.ii.51Mum, then, and no more. Proceed!Mum then, and no more: proceed.
The TempestTem III.ii.115.1Wilt thou destroy him then?Wilt thou destroy him then?
The TempestTem III.ii.140That, if I then had waked after long sleep,That if I then had wak'd after long sleepe,
The TempestTem III.ii.141Will make me sleep again; and then, in dreaming,Will make me sleepe againe, and then in dreaming,
The TempestTem III.iii.33Their manners are more gentle, kind, than ofTheir manners are more gentle, kinde, then of
The TempestTem III.iii.37.1Are worse than devils.Are worse then diuels.
The TempestTem III.iii.78Lingering perdition – worse than any deathLingring perdition (worse then any death
The TempestTem III.iii.84.1He vanishes in thunder. Then, to soft music, enter theHe vanishes in Thunder: then (to soft Musicke.) Enter the
The TempestTem III.iii.103I'll seek him deeper than e'er plummet sounded,I'le seeke him deeper then ere plummet sounded,
The TempestTem IV.i.13Then, as my gift, and thine own acquisitionThen, as my guest, and thine owne acquisition
The TempestTem IV.i.32Sit then and talk with her: she is thine own.Sit then, and talke with her, she is thine owne;
The TempestTem IV.i.58Rather than want a spirit. Appear, and pertly.Rather then want a Spirit; appear, & pertly.
The TempestTem IV.i.175Towards their project. Then I beat my tabor,Towards their proiect: then I beate my Tabor,
The TempestTem IV.i.197fairy, has done little better than played the JackFairy, / Has done little better then plaid the Iacke
The TempestTem IV.i.211That's more to me than my wetting. Yet thisThat's more to me then my wetting: / Yet this
The TempestTem IV.i.262.1Than pard or cat o' mountain.Then Pard, or Cat o' Mountaine.
The TempestTem V.i.24Passion as they, be kindlier moved than thou art?Passion as they, be kindlier mou'd then thou art?
The TempestTem V.i.28In virtue than in vengeance. They being penitent,In vertue, then in vengeance: they, being penitent,
The TempestTem V.i.56And deeper than did ever plummet soundAnd deeper then did euer Plummet sound
The TempestTem V.i.58.2Here enters Ariel before; then Alonso with a franticHeere enters Ariel before: Then Alonso with a franticke
The TempestTem V.i.147Than you may call to comfort you, for IThen you may call to comfort you; for I
The TempestTem V.i.243And there is in this business more than natureAnd there is in this businesse, more then nature
The TempestTem V.i.268Then say if they be true. This misshapen knave,Then say if they be true: This mishapen knaue;
The TempestTem V.i.289I should have been a sore one, then.I should haue bin a sore one then.
The TempestTem V.i.318That is thy charge. Then to the elementsThat is thy charge: Then to the Elements
Timon of AthensTim I.i.39Lives in these touches livelier than life.Liues in these toutches, liuelier then life.
Timon of AthensTim I.i.62Than to abhor himself – even he drops downThen to abhorre himselfe; euen hee drops downe
Timon of AthensTim I.i.82Some better than his value – on the momentSome better then his valew; on the moment
Timon of AthensTim I.i.95More pregnantly than words. Yet you do wellMore pregnantly then words. Yet you do well,
Timon of AthensTim I.i.124.1Than one which holds a trencher.Then one which holds a Trencher.
Timon of AthensTim I.i.188Then I repent not.Then I repent not.
Timon of AthensTim I.i.222Then I lie not.Then I lye not.
Timon of AthensTim I.i.225Then thou liest. Look in thy last work,Then thou lyest: / Looke in thy last worke,
Timon of AthensTim I.i.231What wouldst do then, Apemantus?What wouldst do then Apemantus?
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.1.2in; Flavius and others attending; and then enter in: and then, Enter
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.1.5prison. Then comes, dropping after all, Apemantus,prison. Then comes dropping after all Apemantus
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.4Then, as in grateful virtue I am boundThen, as in gratefull Vertue I am bound
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.19Than my fortunes to me.Then my Fortunes to me.
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.74You had rather be at a breakfast of enemies thanYou had rather be at a breakefast of Enemies, then
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.80enemies then, that then thou mightst kill 'em – and bidEnemies then, that then thou might'st kill 'em: & bid
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.91to myself than you can with modesty speak in your ownto my selfe, then you can with modestie speake in your owne
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.100better or properer can we call our own than the riches ofbetter or properer can we call our owne, then the riches of
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.159When all's spent, he'd be crossed then, an he could.When all's spent, hee'ld be crost then, and he could:
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.177Near? Why then, another time I'll hear thee. INeere? why then another time Ile heare thee. I
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.203Than such that do e'en enemies exceed.Then such that do e'ne Enemies exceede.
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.208With more than common thanks I will receive it.With more then common thankes / I will receyue it.
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.244too, there would be none left to rail upon thee, and thentoo, there would be none left to raile vpon thee, and then
Timon of AthensTim I.ii.252not then. I'll lock thy heaven from thee.not then. Ile locke thy heauen from thee:
Timon of AthensTim II.i.8Better than he, why, give my horse to Timon,Better then he; why giue my Horse to Timon.
Timon of AthensTim II.i.17With slight denial, nor then silenced whenWith slight deniall; nor then silenc'd, when
Timon of AthensTim II.ii.85There will little learning die then, thatThere will litle Learning dye then that
Timon of AthensTim II.ii.107Do it then, that we may account thee aDo it then, that we may account thee a
Timon of AthensTim III.i.55It turns in less than two nights? O you gods!It turnes in lesse then two nights? O you Gods!
Timon of AthensTim III.iii.23I'd rather than the worth of thrice the sumI'de rather then the worth of thrice the summe,
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.1.3of Timon's creditors, waiting for his coming outThen enter Lucius and Hortensius.
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.24Timon in this should pay more than he owes;Timon in this, should pay more then he owes:
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.29And now ingratitude makes it worse than stealth.And now Ingratitude, makes it worse then stealth.
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.50Why then preferred you not your sums and billsWhy then preferr'd you not your summes and Billes
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.52Then they could smile and fawn upon his debts,Then they could smile, and fawne vpon his debts,
Timon of AthensTim III.iv.64and that's revenge enough. Who can speak broader thanand that's reuenge enough. Who can speake broader, then
Timon of AthensTim III.v.41My lords, then, under favour – pardon me,My Lords, then vnder fauour, pardon me,
Timon of AthensTim III.v.48Abroad? Why then women are more valiantAbroad? Why then, Women are more valiant
Timon of AthensTim III.v.50And the ass more captain than the lion,And the Asse, more Captaine then the Lyon?
Timon of AthensTim III.v.51The fellow loaden with irons wiser than the judge,The fellow loaden with Irons, wiser then the Iudge?
Timon of AthensTim III.v.107I'm worse than mad. I have kept back their foes,I'm worse then mad: I haue kept backe their Foes
Timon of AthensTim III.vi.31than we your lordship.then we your Lordship.
Timon of AthensTim III.vi.76the gods. Make the meat be beloved more than the man thatthe Gods. Make the Meate be beloued, more then the Man that
Timon of AthensTim IV.i.9Rather than render back, out with your knivesRather then render backe; out with your Kniues,
Timon of AthensTim IV.i.36Th' unkindest beast more kinder than mankind.Th'vnkindest Beast, more kinder then Mankinde.
Timon of AthensTim IV.ii.40Who then dares to be half so kind again?Who then dares to be halfe so kinde agen?
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.58I know thee too, and more than that I know theeI know thee too, and more then that I know thee
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.62Then what should war be? This fell whore of thineThen what should warre be? This fell whore of thine,
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.63Hath in her more destruction than thy sword,Hath in her more destruction then thy Sword,
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.65I will not kiss thee; then the rot returnsI will not kisse thee, then the rot returnes
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.69But then renew I could not like the moon;But then renew I could not like the Moone,
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.79I see them now. Then was a blessed time.I see them now, then was a blessed time.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.150.2Well, more gold. What then?Well, more Gold, what then?
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.201'Tis, then, because thou dost not keep a dog,'Tis then, because thou dost not keepe a dogge
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.234I love thee better now than e'er I did.I loue thee better now, then ere I did.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.248Worse than the worst, content.Worse then the worst, Content.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.263At duty, more than I could frame employment;At duty more then I could frame employment;
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.358be welcome. I had rather be a beggar's dog thanbe welcome. / I had rather be a Beggers Dogge, / Then
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.379Then, Timon, presently prepare thy grave.Then Timon presently prepare thy graue:
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.399More things like men! Eat, Timon, and abhor them.Mo things like men, / Eate Timon, and abhorre then.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.435More than you rob. Take wealth and lives together.Moe then you Rob: Take wealth, and liues together,
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.466What viler thing upon the earth than friends,What vilder thing vpon the earth, then Friends,
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.471Those that would mischief me than those that do!Those that would mischeefe me, then those that doo.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.477Then, if thou grantest th' art a man, I have forgot thee.Then, if thou grunt'st, th'art a man. / I haue forgot thee.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.479Then I know thee not.Then I know thee not:
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.484For his undone lord than mine eyes for you.For his vndone Lord, then mine eyes for you.
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.485What, dost thou weep? Come nearer. Then I love thee,What, dost thou weepe? / Come neerer, then I loue thee
Timon of AthensTim IV.iii.505Methinks thou art more honest now than wise.Me thinkes thou art more honest now, then wise:
Timon of AthensTim V.i.9Then this breaking of his has been but a try for hisThen this breaking of his, / Ha's beene but a Try for his
Timon of AthensTim V.i.39Then do we sin against our own estate,Then do we sinne against our owne estate,
Timon of AthensTim V.i.47Than where swine feed!then where Swine feede?
Timon of AthensTim V.i.109But where one villain is, then him abandon.But where one Villaine is, then him abandon.
Timon of AthensTim V.i.149Than their offence can weigh down by the dram – Then their offence can weigh downe by the Dramme,
Timon of AthensTim V.i.173Then let him know – and tell him Timon speaks itThen let him know, and tell him Timon speakes it,
Timon of AthensTim V.iv.38Are not inherited. Then, dear countryman,Are not inherited, then deere Countryman,
Timon of AthensTim V.iv.46.1Than hew to't with thy sword.Then hew too't, with thy Sword.
Timon of AthensTim V.iv.54.2Then there's my glove.Then there's my Gloue,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.1.2then enter below Saturninus and his followers at onethen enter Saturninus and his Followers at one
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.7Then let my father's honours live in me,Then let my Fathers Honours liue in me,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.12Keep then this passage to the Capitol,Keepe then this passage to the Capitoll:
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.73.1Sound drums and trumpets. Then enter two of Titus'sSound Drummes and Trumpets. And then enter two of Titus
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.73.2sons, Martius and Mutius, then two men bearing aSonnes; After them, two men bearing a
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.73.3Coffin covered with black, then two other sons, LuciusCoffin couered with blacke, then two other Sonnes.
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.73.4and Quintus, then Titus Andronicus, and thenAfter them, Titus Andronicus, and then
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.73.7and others as many as can be. Then set down the coffin,and others, as many as can bee: They set downe the Coffin,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.121Draw near them then in being merciful;Draw neere them then in being mercifull.
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.138Then, madam, stand resolved; but hope withalThen Madam stand resolu'd, but hope withall,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.153Sound trumpets, and lay the coffin in the tombFlourish. Then Sound Trumpets, and lay the Coffins in the Tombe.
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.188Be candidatus then and put it on,Be Candidatus then, and put it on,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.191Than his that shakes for age and feebleness.Then his that shakes for age and feeblenesse:
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.210Rather than rob me of the people's hearts.Rather then rob me of the peoples harts.
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.231Then if you will elect by my advice,Then if you will elect by my aduise,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.254Receive them then, the tribute that I owe,Receiue them then, the Tribute that I owe,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.272Can make you greater than the Queen of Goths.Can make your Greater then the Queene of Gothes?
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.280How, sir? Are you in earnest then, my lord?How sir? Are you in earnest then my Lord?
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.295My lord, you are unjust, and more than so,My Lord you are vniust, and more then so,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.376Renowned Titus, more than half my soul – Renowned Titus more then halfe my soule.
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.385Let not young Mutius then, that was thy joy,Let not young Mutius then that was thy ioy,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.399Is she not then beholden to the manIs she not then beholding to the man,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.424Receive him then to favour, Saturnine,Receiue him then to fauour Saturnine,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.433Then hear me speak indifferently for all,Then heare me speake indifferently for all:
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.442Then at my suit look graciously on him;Then at my sute looke graciously on him,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.448Lest then the people, and patricians too,Least then the people, and Patricians too,
Titus AndronicusTit I.i.452Yield at entreats, and then let me alone:Yeeld at intreats, and then let me alone:
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.12Then, Aaron, arm thy heart and fit thy thoughtsThen Aaron arme thy hart, and fit thy thoughts,
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.17Than is Prometheus tied to Caucasus.Then is Prometheus ti'de to Caucasus.
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.65What, is Lavinia then become so loose,What is Lauinia then become so loose,
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.72I love Lavinia more than all the world.I loue Lauinia more then all the world.
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.86Than wots the miller of, and easy it isThen wots the Miller of, and easie it is
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.89Better than he have worn Vulcan's badge.Better then he haue worne Vulcans badge.
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.91Then why should he despair that knows to court itThen why should he dispaire that knowes to court it
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.95Why then, it seems some certain snatch or soWhy then it seemes some certaine snatch or so
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.98Then should not we be tired with this ado.Then should not we be tir'd with this adoo:
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.100To square for this? Would it offend you thenTo square for this? Would it offend you then?
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.109Than this Lavinia, Bassianus' love.Then this Lauinia, Bassianus loue,
Titus AndronicusTit II.i.117Single you thither then this dainty doe,Single you thither then this dainty Doe,
Titus AndronicusTit II.ii.11.1Here a cry of hounds and wind horns in a peal;Winde Hornes. Heere a cry of houndes, and winde hornes in a peale, then
Titus AndronicusTit II.ii.11.2then enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lavinia,Enter Saturninus, Tamora, Bassianus, Lauinia,
Titus AndronicusTit II.ii.18Come on then, horse and chariots let us have,Come on then, horse and Chariots letvs haue,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.41Which never hopes more heaven than rests in thee,Which neuer hopes more heauen, then rests in thee,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.51Ah, my sweet Moor, sweeter to me than life!Ah my sweet Moore: / Sweeter to me then life.
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.109And then they called me foul adulteress,And then they call'd me foule Adulteresse,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.123First thrash the corn, then after burn the straw.First thrash the Corne, then after burne the straw:
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.172What begg'st thou then, fond woman? Let me go!What beg'st thou then? fond woman let me go?
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.175O, keep me from their worse-than-killing lust,Oh keepe me from their worse then killing lust,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.184.2Nay then, I'll stop your mouth.Nay then Ile stop your mouth
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.213My heart suspects more than mine eye can see.My heart suspects more then mine eie can see.
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.264Then all too late I bring this fatal writ,Then all too late I bring this fatall writ,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iii.302For, by my soul, were there worse end than death,For by my soule, were there worse end then death,
Titus AndronicusTit II.iv.43That could have better sewed than Philomel.That could haue better sowed then Philomel.
Titus AndronicusTit II.iv.47He would not then have touched them for his life.He would not then haue toucht them for his life.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.18Than youthful April shall with all his showers.Then youthfull Aprill shall with all his showres
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.39Yet in some sort they are better than the tribunes,Yet in some sort they are better then the Tribunes,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.45A stone is soft as wax, tribunes, more hard than stones.A stone is as soft waxe, / Tribunes more hard then stones:
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.56But me and mine; how happy art thou thenBut me and and mine: how happy art thou then,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.62Will it consume me? Let me see it then.Will it consume me? Let me see it then.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.92Hath hurt me more than had he killed me dead.Hath hurt me more, then had he kild me dead:
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.102Is dear Lavinia, dearer than my soul.Is deere Lauinia, deerer then my soule.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.111When I did name her brothers, then fresh tearsWhen I did name her brothers, then fresh teares
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.116If they did kill thy husband, then be joyful,If they did kill thy husband then be ioyfull,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.165My youth can better spare my blood than youMy youth can better spare my blood then you,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.173Then have I kept it to a worthy end.Then haue I kept it to a worthy end.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.184.1Then I'll go fetch an axe.Then Ile goe fetch an Axe.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.209Do then, dear heart, for heaven shall hear our prayers,Doe then deare heart, for heauen shall heare our prayers,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.216Then be my passions bottomless with them.Then be my passions bottomlesse with them.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.219Then into limits could I bind my woes.Then into limits could I binde my woes:
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.226Then must my sea be moved with her sighs,Then must my Sea be moued with her sighes,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.227Then must my earth with her continual tearsThen must my earth with her continuall teares,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.231Then give me leave, for losers will have leaveThen giue me leaue, for loosers will haue leaue,
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.239More than remembrance of my father's death.More then remembrance of my fathers death.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.242These miseries are more than may be borne.These miseries are more then may be borne.
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.269Then which way shall I find Revenge's cave?Then which way shall I finde Reuenges Caue?
Titus AndronicusTit III.i.290He loves his pledges dearer than his life.Heloues his pledges dearer then his life:
Titus AndronicusTit III.ii.2Than will preserve just so much strength in usThen will preserue iust so much strength in vs
Titus AndronicusTit III.ii.11Then thus (striking his breast) I thump it down.Then thus I thumpe it downe.
Titus AndronicusTit III.ii.69Then pardon me for reprehending thee,Then pardon me for reprehending thee,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.i.13Read to her sons than she hath read to theeRead to her sonnes, then she hath read to thee,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.i.38I think she means that there were more than oneI thinke she meanes that ther was more then one
Titus AndronicusTit IV.i.95But if you hunt these bear-whelps, then beware:But if you hunt these Beare-whelpes, then beware
Titus AndronicusTit IV.i.105And where's our lesson then? Boy, what say you?And wheres your lesson then. Boy what say you?
Titus AndronicusTit IV.i.127Than foemen's marks upon his battered shield,Then foe-mens markes vpon his batter'd shield,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.33Led us to Rome, strangers, and more than so,Led vs to Rome strangers, and more then so;
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.64.2Why then, she is the devil's dam:Why then she is the Deuils Dam:
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.82What, must it, nurse? Then let no man but IWhat, must it Nurse? Then let no man but I
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.98Coal-black is better than another hue,Cole-blacke is better then another hue,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.131Then sit we down and let us all consult.Then sit we downe and let vs all consult.
Titus AndronicusTit IV.ii.167Then let the ladies tattle what they please.Then let the Ladies tattle what they please.
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.13Then, when you come to Pluto's region,Then when you come to Plutoes Region,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.24And, kinsmen, then we may go pipe for justice.And kinsmen then we may goe pipe for iustice.
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.49Yet wrung with wrongs more than our backs can bear.Yet wrung with wrongs more then our backe can beare:
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.108Then here is a supplication for you,Then here is a Supplication for you,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.110must kneel, then kiss his foot, then deliver up yourmust kneele, then kisse his foote, then deliuer vp your
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iii.111pigeons, and then look for your reward. I'll be at hand,Pigeons, and then looke for your reward. Ile be at hand
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.33Than prosecute the meanest or the bestThen prosecute the meanest or the best
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.38Then is all safe, the anchor in the port.Then is all safe, the Anchor's in the Port.
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.48Hanged, by' Lady? Then I have brought up a neckHang'd? berLady, then I haue brought vp a neck
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.88Then cheer thy spirit; for know thou, Emperor,Then cheare thy spirit, for know thou Emperour,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.91Than baits to fish, or honey-stalks to sheep,Then baites to fish, or honystalkes to sheepe,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.95If Tamora entreat him, then he will,If Tamora entreat him, then he will,
Titus AndronicusTit IV.iv.113Then go incessantly, and plead to him.Then goe successantly and plead for him.
Titus AndronicusTit V.i.70Swear that he shall, and then I will begin.Sweare that he shall, and then I will begin.
Titus AndronicusTit V.ii.48And then I'll come and be thy waggoner,And then Ile come and be thy Waggoner,
Titus AndronicusTit V.ii.175Than hands or tongue, her spotless chastity,Then Hands or tongue, her spotlesse Chastity,
Titus AndronicusTit V.ii.193For worse than Philomel you used my daughter,For worse then Philomel you vsd my Daughter,
Titus AndronicusTit V.ii.194And worse than Procne I will be revenged.And worse then Progne, I will be reueng'd,
Titus AndronicusTit V.ii.202More stern and bloody than the Centaurs' feast.More sterne and bloody then the Centaures Feast.
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.17What, hath the firmament more suns than one?What, hath the Firemament more Suns then one?
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.50And have a thousand times more cause than heAnd haue a thousand times more cause then he.
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.95Then, gracious auditory, be it known to youThis Noble Auditory, be it knowne to you,
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.126Or more than any living man could bear.Or more then any liuing man could beare.
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.165And talk of them when he was dead and gone.In that respect then, like a louing Childe,
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.186Ten thousand worse than ever yet I didTen thousand worse, then euer yet I did,
Titus AndronicusTit V.iii.199And being dead, let birds on her take pity.And being so, shall haue like want of pitty. / See Iustice done on Aaron that damn'd Moore, / From whom, our heauy happes had their beginning: / Then afterwards, to Order well the State, / That like Euents, may ne're it Ruinate.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.9But I am weaker than a woman's tear,But I am weaker then a womans teare;
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.10Tamer than sleep, fonder than ignorance,Tamer then sleepe, fonder then ignorance;
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.11Less valiant than the virgin in the night,Lesse valiant then the Virgin in the night,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.30Doth lesser blench at sufferance than I do.Doth lesser blench at sufferance, then I doe:
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.33So, traitor! – ‘ when she comes ’? – when is she thence?So (Traitor) then she comes, when she is thence.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.34Well, she looked yesternight fairer than everWell: / She look'd yesternight fairer, then euer
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.43An her hair were not somewhat darker thanAnd her haire were not somewhat darker then
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.65I speak no more than truth.I speake no more then truth.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.i.118.2Come, go we then together.Come goe wee then togither.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.67Then you say as I say, for I am sure he is notThen you say as I say, / For I am sure he is not
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.80were in her body. No, Hector is not a better man thanwere in her body; no, Hector is not a better man then
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.102Then Troilus should have too much. If sheThen Troylus should haue too much, if she
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.103praised him above, his complexion is higher than his;prasi'd him aboue, his complexion is higher then his,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.109than Paris.then Paris.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.110Then she's a merry Greek indeed.Then shee's a merry Greeke indeed.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.123smiling becomes him better than any man in allsmyling becomes him better then any man in all
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.128Why, go to, then: but to prove to you thatWhy go to then, but to proue to you that
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.132Troilus? Why, he esteems her no more thanTroylus? why he esteemes her no more then
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.233bloodied, and his helm more hacked than Hector's,bloudied, and his Helme more hackt then Hectors,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.245be such a man as Troilus than Agamemnon and allbe such a man as Troylus, then Agamemnon, and all
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.248man than Troilus.man then Troylus.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.256Ay, a minced man; and then to be baked withI, a minc'd man, and then to be bak'd with
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.257no date in the pie, for then the man's date is out.no Date in the pye, for then the mans dates out.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.269blow – unless it swell past hiding, and then it's pastblow, vnlesse it swell past hiding, and then it's past
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.285Than in the glass of Pandar's praise may be.Then in the glasse of Pandar's praise may be;
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.289Men prize the thing ungained more than it is.Men prize the thing vngain'd, more then it is.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.ii.294Then, though my heart's content firm love doth bear,That though my hearts Contents firme loue doth beare,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.17That gave't surmised shape. Why then, you princes,That gaue't surmised shape. Why then (you Princes)
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.23In fortune's love: for then the bold and coward,In Fortunes loue: for then, the Bold and Coward,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.42Like Perseus' horse. Where's then the saucy boat,Like Perseus Horse. Where's then the sawcy Boate,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.49Than by the tiger; but when the splitting windThen by the Tyger: But, when the splitting winde
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.51And flies fled under shade, why then the thing of courage,And Flies fled vnder shade, why then / The thing of Courage,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.72Divide thy lips than we are confidentDiuide thy lips; then we are confident
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.103Then enterprise is sick. How could communities,The enterprize is sicke. How could Communities,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.112Should lift their bosoms higher than the shores,Should lift their bosomes higher then the Shores,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.119Then everything includes itself in power,Then euery thing includes it selfe in Power,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.172And then, forsooth, the faint defects of ageAnd then (forsooth) the faint defects of Age
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.220With surety stronger than Achilles' armWith surety stronger then Achilles arme,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.253.1And then to speak.And then to speake.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.266That holds his honour higher than his ease,That holds his Honor higher then his ease,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.267That seeks his praise more than he fears his peril,That seekes his praise, more then he feares his perill,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.269That loves his mistress more than in confessionThat loues his Mistris more then in consession,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.272In other arms than hers; to him this challenge:In other armes then hers: to him this Challenge.
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.276Than ever Greek did compass in his arms;Then euer Greeke did compasse in his armes,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.289If then one is, or hath, or means to be,If then one is, or hath, or meanes to be,
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.299Was fairer than his grandam, and as chasteWas fayrer then his Grandame, and as chaste
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.355In no less working than are swords and bowsIn no lesse working, then are Swords and Bowes
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.371Than in the pride and salt scorn of his eyesThen in the pride and salt scorne of his eyes
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.373Why then we did our main opinion crushWhy then we did our maine opinion crush
Troilus and CressidaTC I.iii.380His crest that prouder than blue Iris bends.His Crest, that prouder then blew Iris bends.
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.6the general run then? Were not that a botchy core?the General run, were not that a botchy core?
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.8Then there would come some matter fromThen there would come some matter from
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.11then.then.
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.14Speak, then, thou vinewed'st leaven, speak; I willSpeake then you whinid'st leauen speake, I will
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.17but I think thy horse will sooner con an oration thanbut I thinke thy Horse wil sooner con an Oration, then
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.43hast no more brain than I have in mine elbows; anhast no more braine then I haue in mine elbows: An
Troilus and CressidaTC II.i.69his brain more than he has beat my bones. I will buyhis Braine more then he has beate my bones: I will buy
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.8Though no man lesser fears the Greeks than IThough no man lesser feares the Greeks then I,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.14Than Hector is. The wound of peace is surety,Then Hector is: the wound of peace is surety,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.42Who marvels, then, when Helenus beholdsWho maruels then when Helenus beholds
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.58To make the service greater than the god;To make the seruice greater then the God,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.93Richer than sea and land? O, theft most base,Richer then Sea and Land? O Theft most base!
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.121Such and no other than event doth form it,Such, and no other then euent doth forme it,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.127I am no more touched than all Priam's sons;I am no more touch'd, then all Priams sonnes,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.161Where Helen is the subject. Then, I say,Where Helen is the subiect. Then (I say)
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.171Than to make up a free determinationThen to make vp a free determination
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.173Have ears more deaf than adders to the voiceHaue eares more deafe then Adders, to the voyce
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.177Than wife is to the husband? If this lawThen Wife is to the Husband? If this law
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.184If Helen then be wife to Sparta's king,If Helen then be wife to Sparta's King
Troilus and CressidaTC II.ii.197Than the performance of our heaving spleens,Then the performance of our heauing spleenes,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.7spiteful execrations. Then there's Achilles – a rarespitefull execrations. Then ther's Achilles, a rare
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.13that little little, less than little wit from them that theythat little little lesse then little wit from them that they
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.30direction till thy death; then if she that lays thee outdirection till thy death, then if she that laies thee out
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.43Thy commander, Achilles. Then tell me,Thy Commander Achilles, then tell me
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.45Thy lord, Thersites. Then tell me, I prayThy Lord Thersites: then tell me I pray
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.47Thy knower, Patroclus. Then tell me, Patroclus,Thy knower Patroclus: then tell me Patroclus,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.94Then will Ajax lack matter, if he have lost hisThen will Aiax lacke matter, if he haue lost his
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.99than their faction; but it was a strong composure a foolthen their faction; but it was a strong counsell that a Foole
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.107If anything more than your sport and pleasureIf any thing more then your sport and pleasure,
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.124Than in the note of judgement; and worthier than himselfThen in the note of iudgement: & worthier then himselfe
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.141What is he more than another?What is he more then another?
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.142No more than what he thinks he is.No more then what he thinkes he is.
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.144better man than I am?a better man then I am?
Troilus and CressidaTC II.iii.187Of that we hold an idol more than he?Of that we hold an Idoll, more then hee?
Troilus and CressidaTC III.i.149Shall more obey than to the edge of steelShall more obey then to the edge of Steele,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.i.151Than all the island kings – disarm great Hector.Then all the Iland Kings, disarme great Hector.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.i.154Gives us more palm in beauty than we have,Giues vs more palme in beautie then we haue:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.34My heart beats thicker than a feverous pulse,My heart beates thicker then a feauorous pulse,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.66More dregs than water, if my fears have eyes.More dregs then water, if my teares haue eyes.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.70safer footing than blind reason stumbling without fear:safe footing, then blinde reason, stumbling without feare:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.78enough than for us to undergo any difficulty imposed.inough, then for vs to vndergoe any difficultie imposed.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.83than they are able, and yet reserve an ability that theythen they are able, and yet reserue an ability that they
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.84never perform; vowing more than the perfection ofneuer performe: vowing more then the perfection of
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.85ten, and discharging less than the tenth part of one.ten; and discharging lesse then the tenth part of one.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.96than Troilus.then Troylus.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.114Why was my Cressid then so hard to win?Why was my Cressid then so hard to win?
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.151Perchance, my lord, I show more craft than love,Perchance my Lord, I shew more craft then loue,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.161That doth renew swifter than blood decays!That doth renew swifter then blood decaies:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.166How were I then uplifted! But alas,How were I then vp-lifted! but alas,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.ii.168And simpler than the infancy of truth.And simpler then the infancie of truth.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.54Than if not looked on. I will lead the way.Then if not lookt on. I will lead the way.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.155Where one but goes abreast. Keep then the path,Where one but goes a breast, keepe then the path:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.163O'errun and trampled on. Then what they do in present,Ore-run and trampled on: then what they doe in present,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.164Though less than yours in past, must o'ertop yours;Though lesse then yours in past, must ore-top yours:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.179More laud than gilt o'erdusted.More laud then guilt oredusted.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.181Then marvel not, thou great and complete man,Then maruell not thou great and compleat man,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.184Than what stirs not. The cry went once on thee,Then what not stirs: the cry went out on thee,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.204Than breath or pen can give expressure to.Then breath or pen can giue expressure to:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.208To throw down Hector than Polyxena.To throw downe Hector then Polixena.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.218Is not more loathed than an effeminate manIs not more loth'd, then an effeminate man,
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.228.2O, then, beware;O then beware:
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.233Even then when we sit idly in the sun.Euen then when we sit idely in the sunne.
Troilus and CressidaTC III.iii.312tick in a sheep than such a valiant ignorance.Ticke in a Sheepe, then such a valiant ignorance.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.i.48.1Than Cressid borne from Troy.Then Cressid borne from Troy.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.2Then, sweet my lord, I'll call mine uncle down;Then sweet my Lord, Ile call mine Vnckle down;
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.6.2Good morrow, then.Good morrow then.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.14With wings more momentary-swift than thought.With wings more momentary, swift then thought:
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.18And then you would have tarried! – Hark, there's one up.And then you would haue tarried. Harke, ther's one vp?
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.26You bring me to do – and then you flout me too.You bring me to doo----and then you floute me too.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.51Is he here, say you? 'Tis more than I know,Is he here say you? 'tis more then I know,
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.ii.54Whoa! Nay, then! Come, come, you'll do himWho, nay then: Come, come, youle doe him
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.iv.25More bright in zeal than the devotion whichMore bright in zeale, then the deuotion which
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.iv.54.1I must, then, to the Grecians?I must then to the Grecians?
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.iv.82Die I a villain then!Dye I a villaine then:
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.38The kiss you take is better than you give;The kisse you take is better then you giue:
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.48.3Why, beg then.Why begge then?
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.49Why then, for Venus' sake, give me a kiss – Why then for Venus sake, giue me a kisse:
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.52Never's my day, and then a kiss of you.Neuer's my day, and then a kisse of you.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.87A maiden battle, then? – O, I perceive you.A maiden battaile then? O I perceiue you.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.107Is more vindicative than jealous love.Is more vindecatiue then iealous loue.
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.119.2Why, then will I no more.Why then will I no more:
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.217Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue.Sir, I foretold you then what would ensue,
Troilus and CressidaTC IV.v.240But there's more in me than thou understand'st.But there's more in me then thou vnderstand'st.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.i.27No! Why art thou then exasperate, thou idleNo? why art thou then exasperate, thou idle,
Troilus and CressidaTC V.i.86leers than I will a serpent when he hisses. He willleeres, then I will a Serpent when he hisses: he will
Troilus and CressidaTC V.i.91word. I will rather leave to see Hector than not to dogword. I will rather leaue to see Hector, then not to dogge
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.15Nay, but do, then,Nay, but doe then;
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.21Nay thenNay then.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.58But will you, then?But will you then?
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.92'Twas one's that loved me better than you will.'Twas one that lou'd me better then you will.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.101.2Why then, farewell;Why then farewell,
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.108.1Farewell till then.Farewell till then.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.113What error leads must err – O, then conclude,What errour leads, must erre: O then conclude,
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.117.3Why stay we then?Why stay we then?
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.152Divides more wider than the sky and earth;Diuides more wider then the skie and earth:
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.178In his descent than shall my prompted swordIn his discent; then shall my prompted sword,
Troilus and CressidaTC V.ii.197than he for a commodious drab. Lechery, lechery, stillthen he for a commodious drab: Lechery, lechery, still
Troilus and CressidaTC V.iii.18Than spotted livers in the sacrifice.Then spotted Liuers in the sacrifice.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.iii.28Holds honour far more precious-dear than life.Holds honor farre more precious, deere, then life.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.iii.38Which better fits a lion than a man.Which better fits a Lyon, then a man.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.iii.49.2Hector, then 'tis wars.Hector, then 'tis warres.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.iv.14Achilles; and now is the cur Ajax prouder than the curAchilles. And now is the curre Aiax prouder then the curre
Troilus and CressidaTC V.v.23Before the belching whale; then is he yonder,Before the belching Whale; then is he yonder,
Troilus and CressidaTC V.vi.31Why then, fly on; I'll hunt thee for thy hide.Why then flye on, Ile hunt thee for thy hide.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.vii.9.1Enter Menelaus and Paris, fighting; then ThersitesEnter Thersites, Menelaus, and Paris.
Troilus and CressidaTC V.x.56Till then I'll sweat, and seek about for eases,Till then, Ile sweate, and seeke about for eases;
Twelfth NightTN I.ii.29He was a bachelor then.He was a Batchellor then.
Twelfth NightTN I.ii.32And then 'twas fresh in murmur – as you know,And then 'twas fresh in murmure (as you know
Twelfth NightTN I.ii.37That died some twelvemonth since, then leaving herThat dide some tweluemonth since, then leauing her
Twelfth NightTN I.ii.64When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see.When my tongue blabs, then let mine eyes not see.
Twelfth NightTN I.iii.9Confine! I'll confine myself no finer than I am.Confine? Ile confine my selfe no finer then I am:
Twelfth NightTN I.iii.81more wit than a Christian or an ordinary man has; but Imore wit then a Christian, or an ordinary man ha's: but I
Twelfth NightTN I.iii.92Then hadst thou had an excellent head of hair.Then hadst thou had an excellent head of haire.
Twelfth NightTN I.iv.22Rather than make unprofited return.Rather then make vnprofited returne,
Twelfth NightTN I.iv.23Say I do speak with her, my lord, what then?Say I do speake with her (my Lord) what then?
Twelfth NightTN I.iv.24O, then unfold the passion of my love.O then, vnfold the passion of my loue,
Twelfth NightTN I.iv.28Than in a nuncio's of more grave aspect.Then in a Nuntio's of more graue aspect.
Twelfth NightTN I.v.20You are resolute, then?You are resolute then?
Twelfth NightTN I.v.33than a foolish wit.’ God bless thee, lady!then a foolish wit. God blesse thee Lady.
Twelfth NightTN I.v.39will amend. For give the dry fool drink, then is the foolwil amend: for giue the dry foole drink, then is the foole
Twelfth NightTN I.v.80ordinary fool that has no more brain than a stone. Lookordinary foole, that has no more braine then a stone. Looke
Twelfth NightTN I.v.84fools, no better than the fools' zanies.fooles, no better then the fooles Zanies.
Twelfth NightTN I.v.171I can say little more than I have studied, and thatI can say little more then I haue studied, & that
Twelfth NightTN I.v.183speech in your praise, and then show you the heart ofspeech in your praise, and then shew you the heart of
Twelfth NightTN I.v.190approach rather to wonder at you than to hear you. Ifapproach rather to wonder at you, then to heare you. If
Twelfth NightTN II.i.14then, Antonio, my name is Sebastian which I calledthen Antonio, my name is Sebastian (which I call'd
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.7To be up after midnight and to go to bed then is early;To be vp after midnight, and to go to bed then is early:
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.19I had rather than forty shillings I had such a leg, and soI had rather then forty shillings I had such a legge, and so
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.49Then come kiss me, sweet and twenty,Then come kisse me sweet and twentie:
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.111more than a steward? Dost thou think, because thou artmore then a Steward? Dost thou thinke because thou art
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.118at anything more than contempt, you would not giveat any thing more then contempt, you would not giue
Twelfth NightTN II.iii.123man's a-hungry, to challenge him the field and then tomans a hungrie, to challenge him the field, and then to
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.5More than light airs and recollected termsMore then light ayres, and recollected termes
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.27She is not worth thee, then. What years, i'faith?She is not worth thee then. What yeares ifaith?
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.30An elder than herself; so wears she to him;An elder then her selfe, so weares she to him;
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.35.1Than women's are.Then womens are.
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.36Then let thy love be younger than thyself,Then let thy Loue be yonger then thy selfe,
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.68I'll pay thy pleasure, then.Ile pay thy pleasure then.
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.80Tell her my love, more noble than the world,Tell her my loue, more noble then the world
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.91You tell her so. Must she not then be answered?You tel her so: Must she not then be answer'd?
Twelfth NightTN II.iv.116Our shows are more than will; for still we proveOur shewes are more then will: for still we proue
Twelfth NightTN II.v.27exalted respect than anyone else that follows her. Whatexalted respect, then any one else that followes her. What
Twelfth NightTN II.v.51And then to have the humour of state; andAnd then to haue the humor of state: and
Twelfth NightTN II.v.68then?then?
Twelfth NightTN II.v.126M! But then there is no consonancy in theM. But then there is no consonancy in the
Twelfth NightTN II.v.131And then I comes behind.And then I. comes behind.
Twelfth NightTN II.v.133see more detraction at your heels than fortunes beforesee more detraction at your heeles, then Fortunes before
Twelfth NightTN II.v.190If you will then see the fruits of the sport, markIf you will then see the fruites of the sport, mark
Twelfth NightTN III.i.77My legs do better under-stand me, sir, than IMy legges do better vnderstand me sir, then I
Twelfth NightTN III.i.101Would they were blanks rather than filled with me.Would they were blankes, rather then fill'd with me.
Twelfth NightTN III.i.107.1Than music from the spheres.Then Musicke from the spheares.
Twelfth NightTN III.i.123Why, then, methinks 'tis time to smile again.Why then me thinkes 'tis time to smile agen:
Twelfth NightTN III.i.126To fall before the lion than the wolf!To fall before the Lion, then the Wolfe?
Twelfth NightTN III.i.131.2Then westward ho!Then Westward hoe:
Twelfth NightTN III.i.138Then think you right; I am not what I am.Then thinke you right: I am not what I am.
Twelfth NightTN III.i.140Would it be better, madam, than I am?Would it be better Madam, then I am?
Twelfth NightTN III.i.145Than love that would seem hid: love's night is noon.Then loue that would seeme hid: Loues night, is noone.
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.5the Count's servingman than ever she bestowed uponthe Counts Seruing-man, then euer she bestow'd vpon
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.20should then have accosted her, and with some excellentshould then haue accosted her, and with some excellent
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.31Why then, build me thy fortunes upon the basisWhy then build me thy fortunes vpon the basis
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.36woman than report of valour.woman, then report of valour.
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.56Never trust me then – and by all means stir onNeuer trust me then: and by all meanes stirre on
Twelfth NightTN III.ii.75lines than is in the new map with the augmentation oflynes, then is in the new Mappe, with the augmentation of
Twelfth NightTN III.iii.5More sharp than filed steel, did spur me forth,(More sharpe then filed steele) did spurre me forth,
Twelfth NightTN III.iii.38.2Do not then walk too open.Do not then walke too open.
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.3For youth is bought more oft than begged or borrowed.For youth is bought more oft, then begg'd, or borrow'd.
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.66man than Sir Toby to look to me! This concurs directlyman then sir Toby to looke to me. This concurres directly
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.104I live. My lady would not lose him, for more than I'llI liue. My Lady would not loose him for more then ile
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.178more approbation than ever proof itself would havemore approbation, then euer proofe it selfe would haue
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.265had rather go with Sir Priest than Sir Knight; I care nothad rather go with sir Priest, then sir knight: I care not
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.308Than you have heard him brag to you he will.Then you haue heard him brag to you he will.
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.328Than what befalls myself. You stand amazed;Then what befals my selfe: you stand amaz'd,
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.346Than lying, vainness, babbling drunkenness,Then lying, vainnesse, babling drunkennesse,
Twelfth NightTN III.iv.377coward than a hare. His dishonesty appears in leavingcoward then a Hare, his dishonesty appeares, in leauing
Twelfth NightTN IV.i.42What, what! Nay, then, I must have an ounceWhat, what? Nay then I must haue an Ounce
Twelfth NightTN IV.ii.43ignorance, in which thou art more puzzled than theignorance, in which thou art more puzel'd then the
Twelfth NightTN IV.ii.47was never man thus abused. I am no more mad than youwas neuer man thus abus'd, I am no more madde then you
Twelfth NightTN IV.ii.89But as well? Then you are mad indeed, if you beBut as well: then you are mad indeede, if you be
Twelfth NightTN IV.ii.90no better in your wits than a fool.no better in your wits then a foole.
Twelfth NightTN IV.ii.112lady. It shall advantage thee more than ever the bearingLady: it shall aduantage thee more, then euer the bearing
Twelfth NightTN IV.iii.4Yet 'tis not madness. Where's Antonio, then?Yet 'tis not madnesse. Where's Anthonio then,
Twelfth NightTN IV.iii.34Then lead the way, good father, and heavens so shineThen lead the way good father, & heauens so shine,
Twelfth NightTN V.i.21why then, the worse for my friends and the betterwhy then the worse for my friends, and the better
Twelfth NightTN V.i.133More than I love these eyes, more than my life,More then I loue these eyes, more then my life,
Twelfth NightTN V.i.134More by all mores than e'er I shall love wife.More by all mores, then ere I shall loue wife.
Twelfth NightTN V.i.147Be that thou know'st thou art, and then thou artBe that thou know'st thou art, and then thou art
Twelfth NightTN V.i.175your help! I had rather than forty pound I were at home.your helpe, I had rather then forty pound I were at home.
Twelfth NightTN V.i.191othergates than he did.other gates then he did.
Twelfth NightTN V.i.197Then he's a rogue and a passy-measures pavin.Then he's a Rogue, and a passy measures panyn:
Twelfth NightTN V.i.221Than these two creatures. Which is Sebastian?Then these two creatures. Which is Sebastian?
Twelfth NightTN V.i.287Look, then, to be well edified when the foolLooke then to be well edified, when the Foole
Twelfth NightTN V.i.332You can say none of this. Well, grant it then,You can say none of this. Well, grant it then,
Twelfth NightTN V.i.347First told me thou wast mad; then, camest in smiling,First told me thou wast mad; then cam'st in smiling,
Twelfth NightTN V.i.364May rather pluck on laughter than revenge,May rather plucke on laughter then reuenge,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.7Than, living dully sluggardized at home,Then (liuing dully sluggardiz'd at home)
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.24For he was more than overshoes in love.For he was more then ouer-shooes in loue.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.33If lost, why then a grievous labour won;If lost, why then a grieuous labour won;
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.72Twenty to one then he is shipped already,Twenty to one then, he is ship'd already,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.76You conclude that my master is a shepherd then,You conclude that my Master is a Shepheard then,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.79Why then, my horns are his horns, whether I wakeWhy then my hornes are his hornes, whether I wake
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.i.105Nay, sir, less than a pound shall serve me forNay Sir, lesse then a pound shall serue me for
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.2Wouldst thou then counsel me to fall in love?Would'st thou then counsaile me to fall in loue?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.21Then thus: of many good, I think him best.Then thus: of many good, I thinke him best.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.48To plead for love deserves more fee than hate.To plead for loue, deserues more fee, then hate.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.72Why didst thou stoop then?Why didst thou stoope then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.76Then let it lie for those that it concerns.Then let it lye, for those that it concernes.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.ii.85Heavy? Belike it hath some burden then?Heauy? belike it hath some burden then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG I.iii.24Then tell me, whither were I best to send him?Then tell me, whether were I best to send him?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.i.2Why then, this may be yours, for this is but one.Why then this may be yours: for this is but one.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.i.70What should I see then?What should I see then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.i.74Belike, boy, then you are in love; for lastBelike (boy) then you are in loue, for last
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.i.125If it please me, madam, what then?If it please me, (Madam?) what then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.ii.6Why, then, we'll make exchange; here, take you this.Why then wee'll make exchange; / Here, take you this.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.ii.15That tide will stay me longer than I should.That tide will stay me longer then I should,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.ii.18For truth hath better deeds than words to grace it.For truth hath better deeds, then words to grace it.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iii.10and has no more pity in him than a dog. A Jewand has no more pitty in him then a dogge: a Iew
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.6Of my mistress, then.Of my Mistresse then.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.21Well, then, I'll double your folly.Well then, Ile double your folly.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.26That hath more mind to feed on your blood thanThat hath more minde to feed on your bloud, then
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.81Welcome him then according to his worth.Welcome him then according to his worth:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.91Nay, then, he should be blind; and, being blind,Nay then he should be blind, and being blind
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.149Then speak the truth by her; if not divine,Then speake the truth by her; if not diuine,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.165.2Then let her alone.Then let her alone.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.iv.187And then I'll presently attend you.And then Ile presently attend you.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.v.15How then? Shall he marry her?How then? shall he marry her?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.v.19Why, then, how stands the matter with them?Why then, how stands the matter with them?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.v.33The conclusion is, then, that it will.The conclusion is then, that it will.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.v.39Than how?Then how?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vi.23I to myself am dearer than a friend,I to my selfe am deerer then a friend,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vii.33Then let me go, and hinder not my course.Then let me goe, and hinder not my course:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vii.44Why then, your ladyship must cut your hair.Why then your Ladiship must cut your haire.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vii.48Of greater time than I shall show to be.Of greater time then I shall shew to be.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vii.62If you think so, then stay at home and go not.If you thinke so, then stay at home, and go not.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG II.vii.64Then never dream on infamy, but go.Then neuer dreame on Infamy, but go:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.19Than, by concealing it, heap on your headThen (by concealing it) heap on your head
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.58Nay then, no matter; stay with me awhile;Nay then no matter: stay with me a while,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.78Then let her beauty be her wedding-dower;Then let her beauty be her wedding dowre:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.91More than quick words do move a woman's mind.More then quicke words, doe moue a womans minde.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.110Why then, I would resort to her by night.Why then I would resort to her by night.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.117Why then, a ladder, quaintly made of cords,Why then a Ladder quaintly made of Cords
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.132.2Then let me see thy cloak;Then let me see thy cloake,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.159And think my patience, more than thy desert,And thinke my patience, (more then thy desert)
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.161Thank me for this more than for all the favoursThanke me for this, more then for all the fauors
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.164Longer than swiftest expeditionLonger then swiftest expedition
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.170And why not death, rather than living torment?And why not death, rather then liuing torment?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.195Who then? His spirit?Who then? his Spirit?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.197What then?What then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.207Then in dumb silence will I bury mine,Then in dumbe silence will I bury mine,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.269serves for wages. She hath more qualities than aserues for wages. Shee hath more qualities then a
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.274than a jade. Item: She can milk. Look you, a sweetthen a Iade. Item. She can milke, looke you, a sweet
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.280news, then, in your paper?newes then in your paper?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.304A special virtue; for then she need not beA speciall vertue: for then shee neede not be
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.307Then may I set the world on wheels, when sheThen may I set the world on wheeles, when she
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.343Item: She hath more hair than wit, and more faultsItem, shee hath more haire then wit, and more faults
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.344than hairs, and more wealth than faults.then haires, and more wealth then faults.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.348Item: She hath more hair than wit – Item, she hath more haire then wit.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.349More hair than wit? It may be I'll prove it: theMore haire then wit: it may be ile proue it: The
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.351than the salt; the hair that covers the wit is more thanthen the salt; the haire that couers the wit, is more then
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.353And more faults than hairs – And more faults then haires.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.355And more wealth than faults.And more wealth then faults.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.359What then?What then?
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.360Why, then will I tell thee – that thy master staysWhy then, will I tell thee, that thy Master staies
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.i.364a better man than thee.a better man then thee.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.ii.20Longer than I prove loyal to your graceLonger then I proue loyall to your Grace,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG III.ii.38Then you must undertake to slander him.Then you must vndertake to slander him.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.i.11Then know that I have little wealth to lose;Then know that I haue little wealth to loose;
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.i.44Know then that some of us are gentlemen,Know then, that some of vs are Gentlemen,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.ii.48Then to Silvia let us singThen to Siluia, let vs sing,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.ii.53How now? Are you sadder than you were before?How now? are you sadder then you were before;
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.iv.13If I had not had more wit than he, to take a fault uponIf I had not had more wit then he, to take a fault vpon
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.iv.53the hangman boys in the market-place; and then Ithe Hangmans boyes in the market place, / And then I
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.iv.117Would better fit his chamber than this shadow.Would better fit his Chamber, then this Shadow.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG IV.iv.146She hath been fairer, madam, than she is.She hath bin fairer (Madam) then she is,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.2O, sir, I find her milder than she was;Oh Sir, I finde her milder then she was,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.10Nay then, the wanton lies; my face is black.Nay then the wanton lyes: my face is blacke.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.14For I had rather wink than look on them.For I had rather winke, then looke on them.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.34Why then,Why then
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.52Than for the love of reckless Silvia.Then for the loue of reck-lesse Siluia.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.54Than hate of Eglamour, that goes with her.Then hate of Eglamoure that goes with her.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.ii.56Than hate for Silvia, that is gone for love.Then hate for Siluia, that is gone for loue.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iii.3A thousand more mischances than this oneA thousand more mischances then this one
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.3I better brook than flourishing peopled towns.I better brooke then flourishing peopled Townes:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.24A smaller boon than this I cannot beg,(A smaller boone then this I cannot beg,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.25And less than this, I am sure, you cannot give.And lesse then this, I am sure you cannot giue.)
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.35Rather than have false Proteus rescue me.Rather then haue false Protheus reskue me:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.47For whose dear sake thou didst then rend thy faithFor whose deare sake, thou didst then rend thy faith
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.51And that's far worse than none; better have noneAnd that's farre worse then none: better haue none
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.52Than plural faith, which is too much by one.Then plurall faith, which is too much by one:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.77.2Then I am paid;Then I am paid:
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.110Women to change their shapes than men their minds.Women to change their shapes, then men their minds.
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.111Than men their minds? 'Tis true. O heaven, were manThen men their minds? tis true: oh heuen, were man
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.143Know, then, I here forget all former griefs,Know then, I heere forget all former greefes,
The Two Gentlemen of VeronaTG V.iv.167I warrant you, my lord – more grace than boy.I warrant you (my Lord) more grace, then Boy.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.1.4bearing a wheaten garland; then Theseus between twobearing a wheaten Garland. Then Theseus betweene two
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.1.6then Hippolyta the bride, led by Pirithous, and anotherThen Hipolita the Bride, lead by Theseus, and another
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.1.9then Artesius and attendantsThe Song,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.63Not Juno's mantle fairer then your tresses,Not Iunos Mantle fairer then your Tresses,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.65Was then nor threshed nor blasted; Fortune at youWas then nor threashd, nor blasted; Fortune at you
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.67Then weaker than your eyes – laid by his club;(Then weaker than your eies) laide by his Club,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.88Then ever he had on thee, who owest his strengthThen ever he had on thee, who ow'st his strength,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.98Then a dove's motion when the head's plucked off;Then a Doves motion, when the head's pluckt off:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.132Will longer last and be more costly thanWill long last, and be more costly then,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.136Than others' laboured meditance, your premeditatingThen others laboured meditance: your premeditating
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.137More than their actions. But O Jove, your actions,More then their actions: But oh Iove, your actions
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.153Then, bootless toil must recompense itselfThen, booteles toyle must recompence it selfe,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.172Greater than any war; it more imports meGreater then any was; it more imports me
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.173Than all the actions that I have foregoneThen all the actions that I have foregone,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.i.185Thou shalt remember nothing more than whatThou shalt remember nothing more, then what
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.ii.1Dear Palamon, dearer in love than bloodDeere Palamon, deerer in love then Blood
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.ii.19By peace for whom he fought; who then shall offerBy peace for whom he fought, who then shall offer
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.ii.26.1Than strife or war could be.Then strife, or war could be.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.22The brine they wept at killing 'em; then ifThe brine, they wept at killing 'em; Then if
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.25As I pursue this war, which shall be thenAs I pursue this war, which shall be then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.53Which then looked pale at parting – when our count(which then lookt pale at parting) when our count
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.65Was then of me approved, what not, condemned,Was then of me approov'd, what not condemd
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.67And put between my breasts – O, then but beginningAnd put betweene my breasts, oh (then but beginning
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.82.1More than in sex dividual.More then in sex individuall.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.89Than I will trust a sickly appetiteThen I will trust a sickely appetite,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iii.95That we, more than his Pirithous, possessThat we, more then his Pirothous, possesse
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.1.1.1Cornets. A battle struck within; then a retreat.Cornets. A Battaile strooke withim: Then a Retrait:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.1.2Flourish. Then enter Theseus, victor, with Herald andFlorish. Then Enter Theseus (victor) the three Queenes meete him,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.8With treble ceremony; rather than a gapWith treble Ceremonie, rather then a gap
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.28.2Then like men use 'em.Then like men use'em
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.32Rather than niggard, waste; their lives concern usRather then niggard wast, their lives concerne us,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.33Much more than Thebes is worth. Rather than have 'emMuch more then Thebs is worth, rather then have 'em
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK I.iv.37Prisoners to us then death. Bear 'em speedilyPrisoners to us, then death; Beare 'em speedily
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.5I am given out to be better lined than it can appear toI am given out to be better lyn'd / Then it can appeare, to
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.10Sir, I demand no more than your own offer, andSir I demaund no more then your owne offer, / And
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.38their captivity than I of ruling Athens; they eat well,their / Captivity, then I of ruling Athens: they eate / Well,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.66Like tall ships under sail; then start amongst 'emLike tall Ships under saile: then start among'st 'em
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.167.1Better than we do, Arcite?Better then we doe Arcite?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.195Rude and impatient, then, like chastity,Rude and impatient, then, like Chastity
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.207.2Well, agree then.Well, agree then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.213.1You love her, then?You love her then?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.245.2Why then would you deal so cunningly,Why then would you deale so cunningly,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.267Thou art baser in it than a cutpurse.Thou art baser in it then a Cutpurse;
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.299.1And then I am sure she would love me.And then I am sure she would love me:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.309And if he lose her then, he's a cold coward.And if he lose her then, he's a cold Coward;
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.325.2Then I am resolved, I will not go.Then I am resolud, I will not goe.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.i.326I must constrain you then; and for you are dangerous,I must constraine you then: and for you are dangerous
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.ii.27Why, then, have with ye, boys; 'tis but a chiding.Why then have with ye Boyes; Tis but a chiding,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.ii.55We'll see the sports, then every man to's tackle;Weele see the sports, then every man to's Tackle:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.ii.78Swifter than wind upon a field of corn,Swifter, then winde upon a feild of Corne
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.iii.14To a young handsome man. Then I loved him,To a yong hansom Man; Then I lov'd him,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.iii.23He bows his noble body, then salutes me, thus:He bowes his noble body, then salutes me, thus:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.iii.31To set him free? What says the law then? Thus muchTo set him free? what saies the law then? Thus much
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.iv.9Sure is a happy sire, then. What proves you?Sure is a happy Sire then: what prooves you?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.iv.48I like him better, prince; I shall not thenI like him better (Prince) I shall not then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.v.14Find me, and then condemn me for't, some wenches,Finde me, and then condemne me for't; some wenches,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK II.v.36Will be all o'er the prison; I am thenWill be all ore the prison: I am then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.5Fresher than May, sweeterFresher then May, sweeter
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.6Than her gold buttons on the boughs, or allThen hir gold Buttons on the bowes, or all
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.68And then they fight like compelled bears, would flyAnd then they fight like compelld Beares, would fly
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.74Of one meal lend me. Come before me then,Of one meale lend me; Come before me then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.78If then thou carry't; and brave souls in shadesIf then thou carry't, and brave soules in shades
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.96.1More than my sword's edge on't.More then my Swords edge ont.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.i.118.2Nay, thenNay then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.ii.9I cannot hallow; if I whooped, what then?I cannot hallow: if I whoop'd; what then?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.ii.19And then they fed on him; so much for that.And then they feed on him: So much for that,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.ii.20Be bold to ring the bell. How stand I then?Be bold to ring the Bell; how stand I then?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.iii.7I know you are faint; then I'll talk further with you.I know you are faint, then ile talke further with you.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.iii.13.2Pray sit down then, and let me entreat you,Pray sit downe then, and let me entreate you
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.iii.23.2Yes, for themYes, for then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.iii.46.2Then I'll leave you;Then Ile leave you:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.iv.13News from all parts o'th' world; then would I makeNewes from all parts o'th world, then would I make
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.10And ‘ Then let be,’ and no man understand me?and then let be, and no man understand mee,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.16And then cries ‘ Rare!’, and I go forward; at lengthand then cries rare, and I goe forward, at length
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.17I fling my cap up – mark there! – then do you,I fling my Cap up; marke there; then do you
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.30And now and then a favour and a frisk.And now and then a fauour, and a friske.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.32.2Couple then,Couple then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.126That seek out silent hanging; then mine hostThat seeke out silent hanging: Then mine Host
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.v.130Then the beest-eating clown, and next the fool,Then the beast eating Clowne, and next the foole,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.24.2Then I shall quit you.Then I shall quit you.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.26More than a mistress to me; no more anger,More then a Mistris to me, no more anger
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.29And both upon our guards, then let our fury,And both upon our guards, then let our fury
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.31And then to whom the birthright of this beautyAnd then to whom the birthright of this Beauty
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.50Then as I am an honest man and love,Then as I am an honest man and love,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.52.2That's mine then.That's mine then,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.89.1Stand off then.Stand off then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.93They bow several ways, then advance and stand They bow severall wayes: then advance and stand.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.107They fight. Then horns sound within; they standFight. Hornes within: they stand.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.115For my contempt; then all the world will scorn us,For my contempt; Then all the world will scorne us,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.125I fear less than my fortune. Know, weak cousin,I feare lesse then my fortune: know weake Cosen
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.127.2Then come what can come,Then come, what can come
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.156.1Then take my life; I'll woo thee to't.Then take my life, Ile wooe thee too't.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.157.1What more than man is this!What more then man is this!
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.182More mercy than you found, sir, your offencesMore mercy then you found, Sir, your offenses
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.183Being no more than his. None here speak for 'em;Being no more then his: None here speake for 'em
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.201.2Nay, then I'll in too;Nay then Ile in too:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.218Safer than banishment; can these two live,Safer then banishment: Can these two live
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.222In public question with their swords. Be wise then,In publique question with their Swords; Be wise then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.225Better they fall by th' law than one another.Better they fall by 'th law, then one another.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.258O all ye gods, despise me then. Thy banishmentO all ye gods dispise me then: Thy Banishment
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.264.2He's a villain, then.H'es a villaine then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.281.1Must die then.Must dye then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.285.2Make choice then.Make choice then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK III.vi.302.2Come, shake hands again then,Come shake hands againe then,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.59A boy or woman. I then left my angleA boy or woman. I then left my angle
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.63And listened to the words she sung, for then,And listned to the words she song, for then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.71And what shall I do then? I'll bring a bevy,And what shall I doe then? Ile bring a beavy,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.76And beg his pardon.’ Then she talked of you, sir;And beg his pardon; Then she talk'd of you Sir;
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.79And see the house made handsome. Then she sungAnd see the house made handsome, then she sung
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.92And then she wept, and sung again, and sighed,And then she wept, and sung againe, and sigh'd,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.119By no mean cross her; she is then distemperedBy no meane crosse her, she is then distemperd
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.i.120.1Far worse than now she shows.For worse then now she showes.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.ii.21Smoother than Pelops' shoulder! Fame and honour,Smoother then Pelops Shoulder? Fame and honour
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.ii.74Than these they have brought – if we judge by the outside – Then these they have brought, (if we judge by the outside)
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.ii.94He's somewhat bigger than the knight he spoke of,Hee's somewhat bigger, then the Knight he spoke of,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.ii.100And when he's angry, then a settled valour,And when he's angry, then a setled valour
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.2than at other some, is it not?Then at other some, is it not?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.12‘ down-a, down-a,’ and penned by no worse man thandowne / A downe a, and pend by no worse man, then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.15Dido see Palamon, and then will she be out of love withDido see Palamon, and Then will she be out of love with
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.21or no ferry; then if it be your chance to come where theOr no ferry: then if it be your chance to come where / The
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.25pick flowers with Proserpine. Then will I make Palamonpicke flowers with Proserpine, then will I make / Palamon
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.26a nosegay; then let him mark me – thena Nosegay, then let him marke me,---then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.54then howls; th' other curses a suing fellow and herthen howles; th' other curses a suing fellow and her
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.60Alas, what then?Alas, what then?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK IV.iii.74seem to steal in than be permitted; take upon you,seeme to steale in, then be permitted; take / Vpon you
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.24Though parcel of myself. Then from this gatherThough parcell of my selfe: Then from this gather
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.45The queen of flowers. Our intercession, then,The Queene of Flowers: our intercession then
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.49.1They prostrate themselves, then kneel before the altarThey kneele.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.72Victory too. Then blend your spirits with mine,Victory too, then blend your spirits with mine,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.77.1Here they prostrate themselves, then kneel as formerlyHere they kneele as formerly.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.91Addest flames hotter than his; the heavenly firesAdd'st flames, hotter then his the heavenly fyres
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.97Than lead itself, stings more than nettles.Then Lead it selfe, stings more than Nettles;
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.126Truer than I. O then, most soft sweet goddess,Truer then I. O then most soft sweet goddesse
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.130.2fall again upon their faces, then on their kneesfall againe upon their faces, then on their knees.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.i.137.7aloof, she sets fire to it. Then they curtsy and kneela loofe, she sets fire to it, then they curtsey and kneele.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.8.2Then she told meThen she told me
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.12.4'Twas very ill done, then;Twas very ill done then,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.21Cure her first this way, then if she will be honest,Cure her first this way, then if shee will be honest,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.84.2We'll to bed then.Wee'l to bed then.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.106.1And then we'll play at cards.And then weele play at Cardes.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.ii.108.1And then we'll sleep together.And then wee'l sleepe together.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.3Than this decision. Every blow that fallsThen this decision ev'ry; blow that falls
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.6A bell than blade. I will stay here.A Bell, then blade: I will stay here,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.34.2Well, well, then, at your pleasure.Well, well then, at your pleasure,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.66.1Than minister to such harm!Then minister to such harme,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.68Then he has won. 'Twas ever likely;Then he has won: Twas ever likely,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.98No more be hid in him than fire in flax,No more be hid in him, then fire in flax,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.99Than humble banks can go to law with watersThen humble banckes can goe to law with waters,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.126Anon the other, then again the first,Anon the other, then againe the first,
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iii.143A life more worthy from him than all women,A life more worthy from him, then all women;
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.35.1Than I can quite or speak of.Then I can quight or speake of.
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.48.2List then. Your cousin,List then: your Cosen
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.56Did rather tell than trample, for the horseDid rather tell, then trample; for the horse
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.71Than any jot obeys; seeks all foul meansThen any jot obaies; seekes all foule meanes
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.78That Arcite's legs, being higher than his head,That Arcites leggs being higher then his head
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.80Even then fell off his head; and presentlyEven then fell off his head: and presently
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK V.iv.118Even then proclaimed your fancy; he restored herEven then proclaimd your fancie: He restord her
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK epilogue.5Then it goes hard, I see. He that hasThen it goes hard I see; He that has
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK epilogue.6Loved a young handsome wench, then, show his face – Lov'd a yong hansome wench then, show his face:
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK epilogue.10Have at the worst can come, then! Now, what say ye?Have at the worst can come, then; Now what say ye?
The Two Noble KinsmenTNK prologue.21Than Robin Hood!’ This is the fear we bring;Then Robin Hood? This is the feare we bring;
The Winter's TaleWT I.i.23and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection,and there rooted betwixt them then such an affection,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.16.1Than you can put us to't.Then you can put vs to't.
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.18We'll part the time between's then; and in thatWee'le part the time betweene's then: and in that
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.35But let him say so, then, and let him go;But let him say so then, and let him goe;
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.56.2Your guest, then, madam:Your Guest then, Madame:
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.59.1Than you to punish.Then you to punish.
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.599.2Not your gaoler, then,Not your Gaoler then,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.62.1You were pretty lordings then?You were pretty Lordings then?
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.77Temptations have since then been born to's: forTemptations haue since then been borne to's: for
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.79Your precious self had then not crossed the eyesYour precious selfe had then not cross'd the eyes
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.104And clap thyself my love: then didst thou utterA clap thy selfe, my Loue; then didst thou vtter,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.117As in a looking-glass; and then to sigh, as 'twereAs in a Looking-Glasse; and then to sigh, as 'twere
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.142And fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credentAnd fellow'st nothing. Then 'tis very credent,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.159How like, methought, I then was to this kernel,How like (me thought) I then was to this Kernell,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.167Now my sworn friend, and then mine enemy;Now my sworne Friend, and then mine Enemy;
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.225More than the common blocks. Not noted, is't,More then the common Blocks. Not noted, is't,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.266By its own visage; if I then deny it,By it's owne visage; if I then deny it,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.269Is thicker than a cuckold's horn – or heard – Is thicker then a Cuckolds Horne) or heard?
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.275To have nor eyes, nor ears, nor thought – then sayTo haue nor Eyes, nor Eares, nor Thought, then say
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.283Than this; which to reiterate were sinThen this; which to reiterate, were sin
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.293Why, then the world and all that's in't is nothing;Why then the World, and all that's in't, is nothing,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.343Go then; and, with a countenance as clearGoe then; and with a countenance as cleare
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.393Our gentry than our parents' noble names,Our Gentry, then our Parents Noble Names,
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.417.2O, then my best blood turnOh then, my best blood turne
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.420Turn then my freshest reputation toTurne then my freshest Reputation to
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.423Nay, hated too, worse than the great'st infectionNay hated too, worse then the great'st Infection
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.433Avoid what's grown than question how 'tis born.Auoid what's growne, then question how 'tis borne.
The Winter's TaleWT I.ii.445Than one condemned by the King's own mouth, thereonThen one condemnd by the Kings owne mouth: / Thereon
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.18One of these days; and then you'd wanton with us,One of these dayes, and then youl'd wanton with vs,
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.29.2Nay, come sit down; then on.Nay, come sit downe: then on.
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.31.2Come on, then,Come on then,
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.54Which often hath no less prevailed than soWhich often hath no lesse preuail'd, then so,
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.99You scarce can right me throughly then to sayYou scarce can right me throughly, then, to say
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.112Worse than tears drown. Beseech you all, my lords,Worse then Teares drowne: 'beseech you all (my Lords)
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.120Has deserved prison, then abound in tearsHa's deseru'd Prison, then abound in Teares,
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.136Than when I feel and see her no farther trust her:Then when I feele, and see her, no farther trust her:
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.149And I had rather glib myself than theyAnd I had rather glib my selfe, then they
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.158I had rather you did lack than I, my lord,I had rather you did lacke then I (my Lord)
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.160To have her honour true than your suspicion,To haue her Honor true, then your suspition
The Winter's TaleWT II.i.190Than what I know, yet shall the oracleThen what I know, yet shall the Oracle
The Winter's TaleWT II.ii.3.1What dost thou then in prison?What dost thou then in prison?
The Winter's TaleWT II.ii.6.2Pray you, then,Pray you then,
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.29Than the Queen's life? A gracious, innocent soul,Then the Queenes life? A gracious innocent soule,
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.30.1More free than he is jealous.More free, then he is iealous.
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.57Than such as most seem yours – I say, I comeThen such as most seeme yours. I say, I come
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.71Than you are mad; which is enough, I'll warrant,Then you are mad: which is enough, Ile warrant
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.80So I would you did: then 'twere past all doubtSo I would you did: then 'twere past all dout
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.86Whose sting is sharper than the sword's; and will not – Whose sting is sharper then the Swords; and will not
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.118Than your own weak-hinged fancy – something savoursThen your owne weake-hindg'd Fancy) something sauors
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.156Than curse it then. But be it: let it live.Then curse it then. But be it: let it liue.
The Winter's TaleWT II.iii.189In more than this deed does require! And blessingIn more then this deed do's require; and Blessing
The Winter's TaleWT III.i.21Even then will rush to knowledge. Go: fresh horses!Euen then will rush to knowledge. Goe: fresh Horses,
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.29I doubt not then but innocence shall makeI doubt not then, but Innocence shall make
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.35Than history can pattern, though devisedThen Historie can patterne, though deuis'd,
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.56.1Than to perform it first.Then to performe it first.
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.58.2More than mistress ofMore then Mistresse of,
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.75Wotting no more than I, are ignorant.(Wotting no more then I) are ignorant.
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.85Which to deny concerns more than avails; for asWhich to deny, concernes more then auailes: for as
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.88More criminal in thee than it – so thouMore criminall in thee, then it) so thou
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.90.1Look for no less than death.Looke for no lesse then death.
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.127Of great Apollo's priest; and that since thenOf great Apollo's Priest; and that since then,
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.168No richer than his honour. How he glistersNo richer then his Honor: How he glisters
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.181And then run mad indeed, stark mad! For allAnd then run mad indeed: starke-mad: for all
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.207Than all thy woes can stir. Therefore betake theeThen all thy woes can stirre: therefore betake thee
The Winter's TaleWT III.ii.232Than to be pitied of thee. Prithee, bring meThen to be pittied of thee. Prethee bring me
The Winter's TaleWT III.iii.1Thou art perfect, then, our ship hath touched uponThou art perfect then, our ship hath toucht vpon
The Winter's TaleWT III.iii.65which I fear the wolf will sooner find than the master. Ifwhich I feare the Wolfe will sooner finde then the Maister; if
The Winter's TaleWT III.iii.73behind-door-work. They were warmer that got this thanbehinde-doore worke: they were warmer that got this, then
The Winter's TaleWT III.iii.92And then for the land-service: to see how the bear toreAnd then for the Land-seruice, to see how the Beare tore
The Winter's TaleWT III.iii.98mocked him, both roaring louder than the sea or weather.mock'd him, both roaring lowder then the sea, or weather.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.ii.13have had thee than thus to want thee. Thou, havinghaue had thee, then thus to want thee, thou hauing
The Winter's TaleWT IV.ii.26are no less unhappy, their issue not being gracious, thanare no lesse vnhappy, their issue, not being gracious, then
The Winter's TaleWT IV.ii.32court, and is less frequent to his princely exercises thanCourt, and is lesse frequent to his Princely exercises then
The Winter's TaleWT IV.ii.43more than can be thought to begin from such a cottage.more, then can be thought to begin from such a cottage
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.3Why, then comes in the sweet o'the year,Why then comes in the sweet o'the yeere,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.18I then do most go right.I then do most go right.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.21Then my account I well may give,Then my account I well may giue,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.52rags; and then, death, death!ragges: and then, death, death.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.54to lay on thee, rather than have these off.to lay on thee, rather then haue these off.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.56more than the stripes I have received, which are mightymore then the stripes I haue receiued, which are mightie
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.92He hath been since an ape-bearer; then a process-server,he hath bene since an Ape-bearer, then a Processe-seruer
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.93a bailiff; then he compassed a motion of the Prodigal(a Bayliffe) then hee compast a Motion of the Prodigall
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.108Sweet sir, much better than I was: I canSweet sir, much better then I was: I can
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iii.113Then fare thee well. I must go buy spices for ourThen fartheewell, I must go buy Spices for our
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.35.1Burn hotter than my faith.Burne hotter then my Faith.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.39Which then will speak: that you must change this purposeWhich then will speake, that you must change this purpose,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.98Then make your garden rich in gillyvors,Then make you Garden rich in Gilly' vors,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.101No more than, were I painted, I would wishNo more then were I painted, I would wish
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.121But sweeter than the lids of Juno's eyesBut sweeter then the lids of Iuno's eyes,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.158But smacks of something greater than herself,But smackes of something greater then her selfe,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.186several tunes faster than you'll tell money; he uttersseuerall Tunes, faster then you'l tell money: hee vtters
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.207points more than all the lawyers in Bohemia canPoints, more then all the Lawyers in Bohemia, can
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.218than you'd think, sister.then youl'd thinke (Sister.)
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.237He hath promised you more than that, or thereHe hath promis'd you more then that, or there
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.259for then we are sure they are true.for then we are sure they are true.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.282than my pack will hold.then my packe will hold.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.306Then whither go'st? Say, whither?Then whether goest? Say whether?
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.368Than he, and men; the earth, the heavens, and all:Then he, and men: the earth, the heauens, and all;
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.372More than was ever man's, I would not prize themMore then was euer mans, I would not prize them
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.385I shall have more than you can dream of yet;I shall haue more then you can dreame of yet,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.386Enough then for your wonder. But come on:Enough then for your wonder: but come-on,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.401.1Than most have of his age.Then most haue of his age.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.423More homely than thy state. – For thee, fond boy,More homely then thy state. For thee (fond boy)
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.428Far than Deucalion off. Mark thou my words!Farre then Deucalion off: (marke thou my words)
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.468Then till the fury of his highness settleThen till the fury of his Highnesse settle
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.474The violation of my faith; and thenThe violation of my faith, and then
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.532That I may call thee something more than man,That I may call thee something more then man,
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.538.2Then list to me.Then list to me:
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.551.1Faster than thought or time.Faster then Thought, or Time.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.563Than a wild dedication of yourselvesThen a wild dedication of your selues
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.687Go to, then.Goe too then.
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.699could have been to him; and then your blood had beencould haue beene to him, and then your Blood had beene
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.780then, 'nointed over with honey, set on the head of athen 'noynted ouer with Honey, set on the head of a
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.781wasp's nest; then stand till he be three-quarters and aWaspes Nest, then stand till he be three quarters and a
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.782dram dead; then recovered again with aqua-vitae ordram dead: then recouer'd againe with Aquavite, or
The Winter's TaleWT IV.iv.783some other hot infusion; then, raw as he is, and in thesome other hot Infusion: then, raw as he is (and in the
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.4More penitence than done trespass. At the last,More penitence, then done trespas: At the last
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.30Than to rejoice the former queen is well?Then to reioyce the former Queene is well?
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.31What holier than, for royalty's repair,What holyer, then for Royalties repayre,
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.52Had squared me to thy counsel! Then even nowHad squar'd me to thy councell: then, euen now,
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.65You chose her; then I'd shriek, that even your earsYou chose her: then Il'd shrieke, that euen your eares
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.72Then, good my lords, bear witness to his oath.Then good my Lords, beare witnesse to his Oath.
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.84Never till then.Neuer till then.
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.100Is colder than that theme – she had not been,Is colder then that Theame: she had not beene,
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.111More worth than any man; men that she isMore worth then any Man: Men, that she is
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.133You, gracious couple, do. And then I lost – You (gracious Couple) doe: and then I lost
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.145He bade me say so – more than all the sceptres(He bad me say so) more then all the Scepters,
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.219Than I do now. With thought of such affectionsThen I doe now: with thought of such Affections,
The Winter's TaleWT V.i.226.1Than what you look on now.Then what you looke on now.
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.41Then have you lost a sight whichThen haue you lost a Sight which
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.50become a loss cries ‘ O, thy mother, thy mother!’; thenbecome a Losse, cryes, Oh, thy Mother, thy Mother: then
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.51asks Bohemia forgiveness; then embraces his son-in-law;askes Bohemia forgiuenesse, then embraces his Sonne-in-Law:
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.52then again worries he his daughter with clippingthen againe worryes he his Daughter, with clipping
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.70even then lost when it was found. But O, the nobleeuen then lost, when it was found. But oh the Noble
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.116then took her to be – who began to be much sea-sick,then tooke her to be) who began to be much Sea-sick,
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.137called me brother; and then the two kings called mycall'd mee Brother: and then the two Kings call'd my
The Winter's TaleWT V.ii.138father brother; and then the Prince my brother and theFather Brother: and then the Prince (my Brother) and the
The Winter's TaleWT V.iii.38For being more stone than it? O royal piece!For being more Stone then it? Oh Royall Peece:
The Winter's TaleWT V.iii.44I kneel and then implore her blessing. Lady,I kneele, and then implore her Blessing. Lady,
The Winter's TaleWT V.iii.89And take you by the hand: but then you'll think – And take you by the hand: but then you'le thinke
The Winter's TaleWT V.iii.95You do awake your faith. Then all stand still;You doe awake your Faith: then, all stand still:
The Winter's TaleWT V.iii.106Until you see her die again, for thenVntill you see her dye againe; for then

Poems

 242 result(s).
PlayKey LineModern TextOriginal Text
A Lover's ComplaintLC.140 Than the true gouty landlord which doth owe them. Then the true gouty Land-lord which doth owe them.
A Lover's ComplaintLC.225 ‘ Oh then advance (of yours) that phraseless hand, Oh then aduance (of yours) that phraseles hand,
A Lover's ComplaintLC.253 ‘ How mighty then you are, Oh, hear me tell, How mightie then you are, Oh heare me tell,
A Lover's ComplaintLC.282 Whose sights till then were levell'd on my face, Whose sightes till then were leaueld on my face,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.3.10 Then, thou fair sun, that on this earth doth shine, Then thou faire Sun, that on this earth doth shine,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.3.12 If broken, then it is no fault of mine. If broken, then it is no fault of mine.
The Passionate PilgrimPP.4.13 Then fell she on her back, fair queen, and toward: Then fell she on her backe, faire queen, & toward
The Passionate PilgrimPP.7.3 Brighter than glass, and yet, as glass is, brittle; Brighter then glasse, and yet as glasse is brittle,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.7.4 Softer than wax, and yet as iron rusty; Softer then waxe, and yet as Iron rusty:
The Passionate PilgrimPP.8.3 Then must the love be great 'twixt thee and me, Then must the loue be great twixt thee and me,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.9.3 Paler for sorrow than her milk-white dove, Paler for sorrow then her milke white Doue,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.9.7 She, silly queen, with more than love's good will, She silly Queene, with more then loues good will,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.9.13 She showed hers: he saw more wounds than one, She shewed hers, he saw more wounds then one,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.10.9 And yet thou leftst me more than I did crave, And yet thou lefts me more then I did craue,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.11.6 And then she clipped Adonis in her arms; And then she clipt Adonis in her armes:
The Passionate PilgrimPP.15.15 Then, lullaby, the learned man hath got the lady gay; Then lullaby the learned man hath got the Lady gay,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.17.12 More in women than in men remain. More in wowen then in men remaine.
The Passionate PilgrimPP.18.27 And then too late she will repent And then too late she will repent,
The Passionate PilgrimPP.18.36 In faith, you had not had it then,’ In faith you had not had it then.
The Passionate PilgrimPP.18.45 There is no heaven; by holy then, There is no heauen (by holy then)
The Passionate PilgrimPP.19.16 Then live with me and be my love. Then liue with me, and be my Loue.
The Passionate PilgrimPP.20.46 Then farewell his great renown; Then farewell his great renowne:
The Rape of LucreceLuc.31 What needeth then apology be made What needeth then Apologies be made
The Rape of LucreceLuc.59 Then virtue claims from beauty beauty's red, Then Vertue claimes from Beautie, Beauties red,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.61 Their silver cheeks, and called it then their shield; Their siluer cheekes, and cald it then their shield,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.77 Rather than triumph in so false a foe. Rather then triumph in so false a foe.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.105 More than his eyes were opened to the light. More then his eies were opend to the light.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.120 For then is Tarquin brought unto his bed, For then is Tarquine brought vnto his bed,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.152 Of that we have; so then we do neglect Of that we haue: so then we doe neglect
The Rape of LucreceLuc.158 Then where is truth if there be no self-trust? Then where is truth if there be no selfe-trust?
The Rape of LucreceLuc.187 Then, looking scornfully, he doth despise Then looking scornfully, he doth despise
The Rape of LucreceLuc.202 Then my digression is so vile, so base, Then my digression is so vile, so base,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.259 Then white as lawn, the roses took away. Then white as Lawne the Roses tooke awaie.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.262 Which struck her sad, and then it faster rocked Which strooke her sad, and then it faster rockt,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.267 ‘ Why hunt I then for colour or excuses? Why hunt I then for colour or excuses?
The Rape of LucreceLuc.274Then childish fear avaunt, debating die! Then childish feare auaunt, debating die,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.280 Then who fears sinking where such treasure lies?’ Then who feares sinking where such treasure lies?
The Rape of LucreceLuc.299 Paying more slavish tribute than they owe. Paying more slauish tribute then they owe.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.350 How can they then assist me in the act? How can they then assist me in the act?
The Rape of LucreceLuc.351Then Love and Fortune be my gods, my guide! Then Loue and Fortune be my Gods, my guide,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.380 Then had they seen the period of their ill! Then had they seene the period of their ill:
The Rape of LucreceLuc.381 Then Collatine again by Lucrece' side Then COLATINE againe by LVCRECE side,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.418 With more than admiration he admired With more then admiration he admired
The Rape of LucreceLuc.513 If thou deny, then force must work my way, If thou deny, then force must worke my way:
The Rape of LucreceLuc.533Then for thy husband and thy children's sake, Then for thy husband and thy childrens sake,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.537 Worse than a slavish wipe or birth-hour's blot; Worse then a slauish wipe, or birth howrs blot,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.584 Myself a weakling; do not then ensnare me: My selfe a weakling, do not then insnare me.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.593 O, if no harder than a stone thou art, O if no harder then a stone thou art,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.609 Then kings' misdeeds cannot be hid in clay. Then Kings misdeedes cannot be hid in clay.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.676 When most unseen, then most doth tyrannize. When most vnseene, then most doth tyrannize.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.687 But she hath lost a dearer thing than life, But shee hath lost a dearer thing then life,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.693 And Lust the thief far poorer than before. And lust the theefe farre poorer then before.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.701 O deeper sin than bottomless conceit O deeper sinne then bottomelesse conceit
The Rape of LucreceLuc.708 And then with lank and lean discoloured cheek, And then with lanke, and leane discolour'd cheeke,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.862 ‘ So then he hath it when he cannot use it, So then he hath it when he cannot vse it,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.895 How comes it then, vile Opportunity, How comes it then, vile opportunity
The Rape of LucreceLuc.930 O hear me then, injurious shifting Time; O heare me then, iniurious shifting time,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.978 Stone him with hardened hearts harder than stones, Stone him with hardned hearts harder then stones,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.980 Wilder to him than tigers in their wildness. Wilder to him then Tygers in their wildnesse.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1112 True sorrow then is feelingly sufficed "True sorrow then is feelinglie suffiz'd,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1159 Than they whose whole is swallowed in confusion. Then they whose whole is swallowed in confusion.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1174 Then let it not be called impiety Then let it not be cald impietie,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1239 And then they drown their eyes or break their hearts. And thẽ they drown their eies, or break their harts.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1244 Then call them not the authors of their ill, Then call them not the Authors of their ill,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1245 No more than wax shall be accounted evil No more then waxe shall be accounted euill,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1286 For more it is than I can well express, For more it is, then I can well expresse,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1288 When more is felt than one hath power to tell. When more is felt then one hath power to tell.
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1324 To see sad sights moves more than hear them told, To see sad sights, moues more then heare them told,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1325 For then the eye interprets to the ear For then the eye interpretes to the eare
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1332 ‘ At Ardea to my lord with more than haste.’ At ARDEA to my Lord with more then hast,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1336 Speed more than speed but dull and slow she deems: Speed more then speed, but dul & slow she deems,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1440 To break upon the galled shore, and then To breake vppon the galled shore, and than
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1495 Then little strength rings out the doleful knell. Then little strength rings out the dolefull knell,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1571 She looks for night, and then she longs for morrow, Shee looks for night, & then shee longs for morrow,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1615 In me moe woes than words are now depending; In me moe woes then words are now depending,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1618Then be this all the task it hath to say: Then be this all the taske it hath to say,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1634 I'll murder straight, and then I'll slaughter thee, Ile murther straight, and then ile slaughter thee,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1640 And then against my heart he set his sword, And then against my heart he set his sword,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1679 More feeling-painful. Let it then suffice More feeling painfull, let it than suffice
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1718 But more than ‘ he ’ her poor tongue could not speak; But more then he, her poore tong could not speake,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1770 Then live, sweet Lucrece, live again and see Then liue sweet LVCRECE, liue againe and see
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1774 And then in key-cold Lucrece' bleeding stream And than in key-cold LVCRECE bleeding streame
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1791 Then son and father weep with equal strife Then sonne and father weep with equall strife,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1793 Then one doth call her his, the other his, The one doth call her his, the other his,
The Rape of LucreceLuc.1846 Then jointly to the ground their knees they bow, Then ioyntlie to the ground their knees they bow,
SonnetsSonn.2.5 Then being asked where all thy beauty lies, Then being askt, where all thy beautie lies,
SonnetsSonn.4.5 Then, beauteous niggard, why dost thou abuse Then beautious nigard why doost thou abuse,
SonnetsSonn.4.11 Then how, when Nature calls thee to be gone, Then how when nature calls thee to be gone,
SonnetsSonn.5.9 Then were not summer's distillation left Then were not summers distillation left
SonnetsSonn.6.1 Then let not winter's ragged hand deface THen let not winters wragged hand deface,
SonnetsSonn.6.9 Ten times thyself were happier than thou art, Ten times thy selfe were happier then thou art,
SonnetsSonn.6.11 Then what could death do, if thou shouldst depart, Then what could death doe if thou should'st depart,
SonnetsSonn.10.10 Shall hate be fairer lodged than gentle love? Shall hate be fairer log'd then gentle loue?
SonnetsSonn.12.9 Then of thy beauty do I question make Then of thy beauty do I question make
SonnetsSonn.13.2 No longer yours than you yourself here live: No longer yours, then you your selfe here liue,
SonnetsSonn.13.6 Find no determination, then you were Find no determination, then you were
SonnetsSonn.15.9 Then the conceit of this inconstant stay Then the conceit of this inconstant stay,
SonnetsSonn.16.4 With means more blessed than my barren rhyme? With meanes more blessed then my barren rime?
SonnetsSonn.16.8 Much liker than your painted counterfeit: Much liker then your painted counterfeit:
SonnetsSonn.17.10 Be scorned like old men of less truth than tongue, Be scorn'd, like old men of lesse truth then tongue,
SonnetsSonn.20.5 An eye more bright than theirs, less false in rolling, An eye more bright then theirs, lesse false in rowling:
SonnetsSonn.21.10 And then believe me, my love is as fair And then beleeue me, my loue is as faire,
SonnetsSonn.22.4 Then look I death my days should expiate. Then look I death my daies should expiate.
SonnetsSonn.22.8 How can I then be elder than thou art? How can I then be elder then thou art?
SonnetsSonn.23.9 O let my books be then the eloquence O let my books be then the eloquence,
SonnetsSonn.23.12 More than that tongue that more hath more expressed. More then that tonge that more hath more exprest.
SonnetsSonn.25.13 Then happy I that love and am beloved Then happy I that loue and am beloued
SonnetsSonn.26.13 Then may I dare to boast how I do love thee, Then may I dare to boast how I doe loue thee,
SonnetsSonn.26.14 Till then not show my head where thou mayst prove me. Til then, not show my head where thou maist proue me
SonnetsSonn.27.3 But then begins a journey in my head But then begins a iourny in my head
SonnetsSonn.27.5 For then my thoughts (from far where I abide) For then my thoughts (from far where I abide)
SonnetsSonn.28.1 How can I then return in happy plight HOw can I then returne in happy plight
SonnetsSonn.29.10 Haply I think on thee, and then my state Haplye I thinke on thee, and then my state,
SonnetsSonn.29.14 That then I scorn to change my state with kings. That then I skorne to change my state with Kings.
SonnetsSonn.30.5 Then can I drown an eye (unused to flow) Then can I drowne an eye (vn-vs'd to flow)
SonnetsSonn.30.9 Then can I grieve at grievances foregone, Then can I greeue at greeuances fore-gon,
SonnetsSonn.32.9 Oh then vouchsafe me but this loving thought: Oh then voutsafe me but this louing thought,
SonnetsSonn.32.11 A dearer birth than this his love had brought A dearer birth then this his loue had brought
SonnetsSonn.35.8 Excusing thy sins more than thy sins are: Excusing their sins more then their sins are:
SonnetsSonn.37.9 So then I am not lame, poor, nor despised, So then I am not lame, poore, nor dispis'd,
SonnetsSonn.37.14 This wish I have, then ten times happy me! This wish I haue, then ten times happy me.
SonnetsSonn.38.10 Than those old nine which rhymers invocate, Then those old nine which rimers inuocate,
SonnetsSonn.40.2 What hast thou then more than thou hadst before? What hast thou then more then thou hadst before?
SonnetsSonn.40.5 Then if for my love, thou my love receivest, Then if for my loue, thou my loue receiuest,
SonnetsSonn.40.12 To bear love's wrong than hate's known injury. To beare loues wrong, then hates knowne iniury.
SonnetsSonn.42.14 Sweet flattery, then she loves but me alone. Sweete flattery, then she loues but me alone.
SonnetsSonn.43.1 When most I wink then do mine eyes best see, WHen most I winke then doe mine eyes best see.
SonnetsSonn.43.5 Then thou whose shadow shadows doth make bright, Then thou whose shaddow shaddowes doth make bright,
SonnetsSonn.44.3 For then despite of space I would be brought For then dispight of space I would be brought,
SonnetsSonn.44.5 No matter then although my foot did stand No matter then although my foote did stand
SonnetsSonn.45.13 This told, I joy, but then no longer glad, This told, I ioy, but then no longer glad,
SonnetsSonn.47.5 With my love's picture then my eye doth feast With my loues picture then my eye doth feast,
SonnetsSonn.47.11 For thou not farther than my thoughts canst move, For thou nor farther then my thoughts canst moue,
SonnetsSonn.50.12 More sharp to me than spurring to his side; More sharpe to me then spurring to his side,
SonnetsSonn.51.5 O, what excuse will my poor beast then find, O what excuse will my poore beast then find,
SonnetsSonn.51.7 Then should I spur, though mounted on the wind; Then should I spurre though mounted on the wind,
SonnetsSonn.51.9 Then can no horse with my desire keep pace; Then can no horse with my desire keepe pace,
SonnetsSonn.55.4 Than unswept stone, besmeared with sluttish time. Then vnswept stone, besmeer'd with sluttish time.
SonnetsSonn.56.2 Thy edge should blunter be than appetite, Thy edge should blunter be then apetite,
SonnetsSonn.65.4 Whose action is no stronger than a flower? Whose action is no stronger then a flower?
SonnetsSonn.69.8 By seeing farther than the eye hath shown. By seeing farther then the eye hath showne.
SonnetsSonn.69.11 Then, churls, their thoughts, although their eyes were kind, Then churls their thoughts (although their eies were kind)
SonnetsSonn.70.14 Then thou alone kingdoms of hearts shouldst owe. Then thou alone kingdomes of hearts shouldst owe.
SonnetsSonn.71.2 Than you shall hear the surly sullen bell Then you shall heare the surly sullen bell
SonnetsSonn.71.8 If thinking on me then should make you woe. If thinking on me then should make you woe.
SonnetsSonn.72.6 To do more for me than mine own desert, To doe more for me then mine owne desert,
SonnetsSonn.72.8 Than niggard truth would willingly impart: Then nigard truth would willingly impart:
SonnetsSonn.74.9 So then thou hast but lost the dregs of life, So then thou hast but lost the dregs of life,
SonnetsSonn.75.8 Then bettered that the world may see my pleasure. Then betterd that the world may see my pleasure.
SonnetsSonn.79.13 Then thank him not for that which he doth say, Then thanke him not for that which he doth say,
SonnetsSonn.80.13 Then if he thrive and I be cast away, Then If he thriue and I be cast away,
SonnetsSonn.83.14 Than both your poets can in praise devise. Then both your Poets can in praise deuise.
SonnetsSonn.84.2 Than this rich praise, that you alone are you, Then this rich praise, that you alone, are you,
SonnetsSonn.85.13 Then others for the breath of words respect, Then others, for the breath of words respect,
SonnetsSonn.86.14 Then lacked I matter; that enfeebled mine. Then lackt I matter, that infeebled mine.
SonnetsSonn.87.9 Thyself thou gav'st, thy own worth then not knowing, Thy selfe thou gau'st, thy owne worth then not knowing,
SonnetsSonn.90.1 Then hate me when thou wilt; if ever, now; THen hate me when thou wilt, if euer, now,
SonnetsSonn.91.9 Thy love is better than high birth to me, Thy loue is bitter then high birth to me,
SonnetsSonn.91.10 Richer than wealth, prouder than garments' cost, Richer then wealth, prouder then garments cost,
SonnetsSonn.91.11 Of more delight than hawks or horses be; Of more delight then Hawkes or Horses bee:
SonnetsSonn.92.3 And life no longer than thy love will stay, And life no longer then thy loue will stay,
SonnetsSonn.92.5 Then need I not to fear the worst of wrongs, Then need I not to feare the worst of wrongs,
SonnetsSonn.92.8 Than that which on thy humour doth depend. Then that, which on thy humor doth depend.
SonnetsSonn.94.14 Lilies that fester smell far worse than weeds. Lillies that fester, smell far worse then weeds.
SonnetsSonn.100.13 Give my love fame faster than Time wastes life; Giue my loue fame faster then time wasts life,
SonnetsSonn.101.13 Then do thy office, Muse; I teach thee how, Then do thy office Muse, I teach thee how,
SonnetsSonn.102.5 Our love was new, and then but in the spring, Our loue was new, and then but in the spring,
SonnetsSonn.102.10 Than when her mournful hymns did hush the night, Then when her mournefull himns did hush the night,
SonnetsSonn.103.4 Than when it hath my added praise beside. Then when it hath my added praise beside.
SonnetsSonn.103.9 Were it not sinful then, striving to mend, Were it not sinfull then striuing to mend,
SonnetsSonn.103.12 Than of your graces and your gifts to tell. Then of your graces and your gifts to tell.
SonnetsSonn.103.13 And more, much more than in my verse can sit, And more, much more then in my verse can sit,
SonnetsSonn.106.5 Then in the blazon of sweet beauty's best, Then in the blazon of sweet beauties best,
SonnetsSonn.110.13 Then give me welcome, next my heaven the best, Then giue me welcome, next my heauen the best,
SonnetsSonn.111.4 Than public means which public manners breeds. Then publick meanes which publick manners breeds.
SonnetsSonn.111.8 Pity me then and wish I were renewed; Pitty me then, and wish I were renu'de,
SonnetsSonn.111.13 Pity me then, dear friend, and I assure ye Pittie me then deare friend, and I assure yee,
SonnetsSonn.115.3 Yet then my judgement knew no reason why Yet then my iudgement knew no reason why,
SonnetsSonn.115.10 Might I not then say now I love you best, Might I not then say now I loue you best,
SonnetsSonn.115.13 Love is a babe; then might I not say so, Loue is a Babe, then might I not say so
SonnetsSonn.119.12 Grows fairer than at first, more strong, far greater. Growes fairer then at first, more strong, far greater.
SonnetsSonn.119.14 And gain by ills thrice more than I have spent. And gaine by ills thrise more then I haue spent.
SonnetsSonn.120.2 And for that sorrow, which I then did feel, And for that sorrow, which I then didde feele,
SonnetsSonn.120.11 And soon to you, as you to me, then tendered And soone to you, as you to me then tendred
SonnetsSonn.121.1 'Tis better to be vile than vile esteemed, TIs better to be vile then vile esteemed,
SonnetsSonn.123.8 Than think that we before have heard them told. Then thinke that we before haue heard them tould:
SonnetsSonn.125.4 Which proves more short than waste or ruining? Which proues more short then wast or ruining?
SonnetsSonn.128.12 Making dead wood more blessed than living lips. Making dead wood more blest then liuing lips,
SonnetsSonn.130.2 Coral is far more red than her lips' red; Currall is farre more red, then her lips red,
SonnetsSonn.130.3 If snow be white, why then her breasts are dun; If snow be white, why then her brests are dun:
SonnetsSonn.130.8 Than in the breath that from my mistress reeks. Then in the breath that from my Mistres reekes.
SonnetsSonn.132.10 O let it then as well beseem thy heart O let it then as well beseeme thy heart
SonnetsSonn.132.13 Then will I swear beauty herself is black, Then will I sweare beauty her selfe is blacke,
SonnetsSonn.133.10 But then my friend's heart let my poor heart bail; But then my friends heart let my poore heart bale,
SonnetsSonn.133.12 Thou canst not then use rigour in my gaol. Thou canst not then vse rigor in my Iaile.
SonnetsSonn.135.3 More than enough am I that vex thee still, More then enough am I that vexe thee still,
SonnetsSonn.136.9 Then in the number let me pass untold, Then in the number let me passe vntold,
SonnetsSonn.136.14 And then thou lov'st me for my name is Will. And then thou louest me for my name is Will.
SonnetsSonn.139.8 Is more than my o'erpressed defence can bide? Is more then my ore-prest defence can bide?
SonnetsSonn.146.9 Then soul, live thou upon thy servant's loss, Then soule liue thou vpon thy seruants losse,
SonnetsSonn.146.14 And Death once dead, there's no more dying then. And death once dead, ther's no more dying then,
SonnetsSonn.148.7 If it be not, then love doth well denote If it be not, then loue doth well denote,
SonnetsSonn.148.11 No marvel then though I mistake my view; No maruaile then though I mistake my view,
SonnetsSonn.151.3 Then, gentle cheater, urge not my amiss, Then gentle cheater vrge not my amisse,
Venus and AdonisVen.7 ‘ Thrice-fairer than myself,’ thus she began, Thrise fairer then my selfe, (thus she began)
Venus and AdonisVen.9 Stain to all nymphs, more lovely than a man, Staine to all Nimphs, more louely then a man,
Venus and AdonisVen.10 More white and red than doves or roses are; More white, and red, then doues, or roses are:
Venus and AdonisVen.51 Then with her windy sighs and golden hairs Then with her windie sighes, and golden heares,
Venus and AdonisVen.92 More thirst for drink than she for this good turn. More thirst for drinke, then she for this good turne,
Venus and AdonisVen.120 Then why not lips on lips, since eyes in eyes? Then why not lips on lips, since eyes in eyes?
Venus and AdonisVen.121 ‘ Art thou ashamed to kiss? then wink again, Art thou asham'd to kisse? then winke againe,
Venus and AdonisVen.137 Then mightst thou pause, for then I were not for thee; Thẽ mightst thou pause, for thẽ I were not for thee,
Venus and AdonisVen.159 Then woo thyself, be of thyself rejected, Then woo thy selfe, be of thy selfe reiected:
Venus and AdonisVen.200 Nay, more than flint, for stone at rain relenteth. Nay more then flint, for stone at raine relenteth:
Venus and AdonisVen.223 Sometime she shakes her head, and then his hand; Sometime she shakes her head, and then his hand,
Venus and AdonisVen.239 Then be my deer, since I am such a park; Then be my deare, since I am such a parke,
Venus and AdonisVen.313 Then, like a melancholy malcontent, Then like a melancholy malcontent,
Venus and AdonisVen.355 O, what a war of looks was then between them, Oh what a war of lookes was then betweene them,
Venus and AdonisVen.377 Then love's deep groans I never shall regard, Then loues deepe grones, I neuer shall regard,
Venus and AdonisVen.398 Teaching the sheets a whiter hue than white, Teaching the sheets a whiter hew then white,
Venus and AdonisVen.410 Unless it be a boar, and then I chase it. Vnlesse it be a Boare, and then I chase it,
Venus and AdonisVen.540 Incorporate then they seem; face grows to face. Incorporate then they seeme, face growes to face.
Venus and AdonisVen.570 But then woos best when most his choice is froward. But thẽ woes best, whẽ most his choice is froward.
Venus and AdonisVen.571 When he did frown, O, had she then gave over, When he did frowne, ô had she then gaue ouer,
Venus and AdonisVen.599 That worse than Tantalus' is her annoy, That worse then Tantalus is her annoy,
Venus and AdonisVen.626 Are better proof than thy spear's point can enter; Are better proofe then thy speares point can enter,
Venus and AdonisVen.661 ‘ And more than so, presenteth to mine eye And more then so, presenteth to mine eye,
Venus and AdonisVen.695 Then do they spend their mouths; Echo replies, Then do they spend their mouth's, eccho replies,
Venus and AdonisVen.703Then shalt thou see the dew-bedabbled wretch Then shalt thou see the deaw-bedabbled wretch,
Venus and AdonisVen.716 ‘ Leave me, and then the story aptly ends. Leaue me, and then the storie aptly ends,
Venus and AdonisVen.721 ‘ But if thou fall, O, then imagine this, But if thou fall, oh then imagine this,
Venus and AdonisVen.764 A mischief worse than civil home-bred strife, A mischiefe worse then ciuill home-bred strife,
Venus and AdonisVen.769 ‘ Nay, then,’ quoth Adon, ‘ you will fall again Nay then (quoth Adon) you will fall againe,
Venus and AdonisVen.776 And every tongue more moving than your own, And euerie tongue more mouing then your owne,
Venus and AdonisVen.783 And then my little heart were quite undone, And then my litle heart were quite vndone,
Venus and AdonisVen.909 Her more than haste is mated with delays, Her more then hast, is mated with delayes,
Venus and AdonisVen.943 ‘ Hadst thou but bid beware, then he had spoke, Hadst thou but bid beware, then he had spoke,
Venus and AdonisVen.971 But none is best. Then join they all together, But none is best, then ioyne they all together,
Venus and AdonisVen.1001 Then, gentle shadow – truth I must confess – Then gentle shadow (truth I must confesse)
Venus and AdonisVen.1065 And then she reprehends her mangling eye And then she reprehends her mangling eye,
Venus and AdonisVen.1090 Play with his locks. Then would Adonis weep; Play with his locks, then would Adonis weepe.
Venus and AdonisVen.1109 If he did see his face, why then I know If he did see his face, why then I know,

Glossary

 12 result(s).
amongfrom time to time, every now and then
anon, ever andevery now and then, at regular intervals
Argushundred-eyed guard of Io, a heifer; Hermes killed him to rescue Io, and Hera then transferred his many eyes to the peacock’s tail
Ariadne[ari'adnee] daughter of Minos who helped Theseus find his way through the labyrinth, and then fled with him; Theseus abandoned her while she slept at Naxos
Arion[a'riyon] legendary Greek musician; about to be robbed and killed by a ship’s crew, he was allowed to sing one last song; dolphins then appeared, Arion leapt overboard, and was carried by one of them to safety
consequentlysubsequently, later, then
Europa[pron: yu'rohpa] daughter of Agenor; abducted by Jove in the shape of a bull, who then swam with her on his back to Crete
ever and anonevery now and then, at regular intervals
Milo[pron: 'miyloh] Greek athlete, 6th-c BC, who carried an ox around the stadium at Olympia then ate it all in a single day
Niobe[pron: 'niyohbay] heroine of Thebes, daughter of Tantalus, whose sons and daughters were slain by Apollo and Diana; the gods then turned her into a rock, but her eyes continued to weep in the form of a spring
sometimesometimes, now and then
Trentriver flowing south and then north-east in the English Midlands

Thesaurus

 5 result(s).
every now and thenamong
every now and thenever and anon
now and thensometime
now and then, everyamong
now and then, everyever and anon

Themes and Topics

 16 result(s).
Comparison...elder as in sonn 22 8 &lsquo how can i then be elder than thou art &rsquo lastly ...
Discourse markers... few in h5 i ii 246 thus then in few / your highness in a few...
... you rascal come your ways come on then - starting a fight have with yo...
Elision...out of doors would hardly differ between then and now the presence or absence of an a...
How and how...re to be found in shakespearean english then as now how was used to express manner (...
Negatives...wn] for no man sir [hamlet] what woman then [first clown] for none neither ha...
Politeness...vour under tim iii v 41 my lords then under favour - pardon me leave...
... leave by cym v v 315 have at it then by leave leave by your mw ...
Responses...imulus response yes ham i ii 230 then saw you not his face o yes my lord ...
... me nay ham ii ii 290 [aside] nay then i have an eye of you wide range ...
Singing... the spring hey-ho ayl ii vii 181 then hey-ho the holly this life is most jol...
Thou and you...where vous was used in that way english then became like french which has tu and vou...
...raitor tnk ii i 226 palamon to arcite then continues with thou throughout the scene...
...esponding in kind x uses thou and then you marking a change of attitude ...
...ophelia suspicion x uses you and then thou marking a change of attitude ...
... attempt at intimacy beatrice why then god forgive me benedick what...
Verb forms...and shall the chief differences between then and now are shown below be ...
Classical mythology...hermes killed him to rescue io and hera then transferred his many eyes to the peacock...
... find his way through the labyrinth and then fled with him theseus abandoned her whi...
... allowed to sing one last song dolphins then appeared arion leapt overboard and was...
...cted by jove in the shape of a bull who then swam with her on his back to crete j...
...were slain by apollo and diana the gods then turned her into a rock but her eyes con...
...ter thersites jeered at him for killing then falling in love with penthesilea chara...
Non-classical legend, romance, and folklore... dagonet sir 2h4 iii ii 271 i was then sir dagonet in arthur's show king art...
Historical figures...ried an ox around the stadium at olympia then ate it all in a single day mulm...
French...vôtre est france et vous êtes mienne > then yours is france and you are mine h5 v ...
Frequently Encountered Words (FEW)... 177 [morton to lord bardolph] what hath then befallen / or what hath this bold enter...
...itania to fairies] sing me now asleep / then to your offices tem i ii 312 [prospero ...
...lers] if they scape from your encounter then they light on us mw iii v 107 [falstaff...
...doors e3 i i 168 [prince edward to all] then cheerfully forward each a several way ...
Abbreviations...of emilia] you first saw her and / even then proclaimed your fancy luc 200 ma iii i...
...a numeral q1 q2 etc the variant form then follows denotement (n ) indication si...

Words Families

 1 result(s).
Word FamilyWord Family GroupWords
THENBASICthen adv

Snippets

 0 result(s).
x

Jump directly to